Selected quad for the lemma: order_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
order_n design_n episcopal_a great_a 16 3 2.1187 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30352 The history of the reformation of the Church of England. The first part of the progess made in it during the reign of K. Henry the VIII / by Gilbert Burnet. Burnet, Gilbert, 1643-1715.; White, Robert, 1645-1703. 1679 (1679) Wing B5797; ESTC R36341 824,193 805

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

final_a determination_n be_v to_o be_v make_v without_o any_o further_a process_n and_o in_o every_o process_n concern_v the_o king_n or_o his_o heir_n and_o successor_n a_o appeal_n shall_v lie_v to_o the_o upper_a house_n of_o convocation_n where_o it_o shall_v be_v final_o determine_v never_o to_o be_v again_o call_v in_o question_n as_o this_o bill_n pass_v the_o sense_n of_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n about_o the_o king_n marriage_n do_v clear_o appear_v but_o in_o the_o convocation_n the_o business_n be_v more_o full_o debate_v the_o convocation_n of_o the_o province_n of_o canterbury_n be_v at_o this_o time_n destitute_a of_o its_o head_n and_o principal_a member_n for_o warham_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v dead_a since_o august_n last_o year_n 23._o he_o be_v a_o great_a canonist_n a_o able_a statesman_n a_o dextrous_a courtier_n and_o a_o favourer_n of_o learned_a man_n he_o always_o hate_v cardinal_n wolsey_n and_o will_v never_o stoop_v to_o he_o esteem_v it_o below_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o see_n he_o be_v not_o so_o peevish_o engage_v to_o the_o learning_n of_o the_o school_n as_o other_o be_v but_o set_v up_o and_o encourage_v a_o more_o generous_a way_n of_o knowledge_n yet_o he_o be_v a_o severe_a persecutor_n of_o they_o who_o he_o think_v heretic_n and_o incline_v to_o believe_v idle_a and_o fanatical_a people_n as_o will_v afterward_o appear_v when_o the_o imposture_n of_o the_o maid_n of_o kent_n shall_v be_v relate_v the_o king_n see_v well_o of_o how_o great_a importance_n it_o be_v to_o the_o design_n he_o be_v then_o form_v to_o fill_v that_o see_v with_o a_o learned_a cranmer_n prudent_a and_o resolute_a man_n but_o find_v none_o in_o the_o episcopal_a order_n that_o be_v qualify_v to_o his_o mind_n and_o have_v observe_v a_o native_a simplicity_n join_v with_o much_o courage_n and_o temper_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o wisdom_n in_o dr._n cranmer_n who_o be_v then_o negotiate_v his_o business_n among_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o germany_n he_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n without_o any_o address_n from_o cranmer_n design_v to_o raise_v he_o to_o that_o dignity_n and_o give_v he_o notice_n of_o it_o that_o he_o may_v make_v haste_n and_o come_v home_o to_o enjoy_v that_o reward_n which_o the_o king_n have_v appoint_v for_o he_o but_o cranmer_n have_v receive_v this_o fox_n do_v all_o he_o can_v to_o excuse_v himself_o from_o the_o burden_n which_o be_v come_v upon_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o return_v very_o slow_o to_o england_n hope_v that_o the_o king_n thought_n cool_v some_o other_o person_n may_v step_v in_o between_o he_o and_o a_o dignity_n of_o which_o have_v a_o just_a and_o primitive_a sense_n he_o do_v look_v on_o it_o with_o fear_n and_o apprehension_n rather_o than_o joy_n and_o desire_v this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o set_v he_o back_o that_o the_o king_n who_o have_v know_v well_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v importune_v by_o ambitious_a and_o aspire_a churchman_n but_o have_v not_o find_v it_o usual_a that_o they_o shall_v decline_v and_o fly_v from_o preferment_n be_v thereby_o confirm_v in_o his_o high_a opinion_n of_o he_o and_o neither_o the_o delay_n of_o his_o journey_n nor_o his_o entreaty_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o a_o burden_n which_o his_o humility_n make_v he_o imagine_v himself_o unable_a to_o bear_v can_v divert_v the_o king_n so_o that_o though_o six_o month_n elapse_v before_o the_o thing_n be_v settle_v yet_o the_o king_n persist_v in_o his_o opinion_n and_o the_o other_o be_v force_v to_o yield_v rome_n in_o the_o end_n of_o january_n the_o king_n send_v to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o bull_n for_o cranmers_n promotion_n and_o though_o the_o statute_n be_v pass_v against_o procure_v more_o bull_n from_o rome_n yet_o the_o king_n resolve_v not_o to_o begin_v the_o breach_n till_o he_o be_v force_v to_o it_o by_o the_o pope_n it_o may_v be_v easy_o imagine_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o hearty_a in_o this_o promotion_n and_o that_o he_o apprehend_v ill_a consequence_n from_o the_o advancement_n of_o a_o man_n who_o have_v go_v over_o many_o court_n of_o christendom_n dispute_v against_o his_o power_n of_o dispense_v and_o have_v live_v in_o much_o familiarity_n with_o osiander_n and_o the_o lutheran_n in_o germany_n yet_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o precipitate_v a_o rupture_n with_o england_n therefore_o he_o consent_v to_o it_o and_o the_o bull_n be_v expedit_v though_o instead_o of_o annates_fw-la there_o be_v only_o 900_o ducat_n pay_v for_o they_o they_o be_v the_o last_o bull_n that_o be_v receive_v in_o england_n in_o this_o king_n reign_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o cranmers_n register_n by_o one_o bull_n he_o be_v upon_o the_o king_n nomination_n promote_v to_o be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n which_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o king_n by_o a_o second_o direct_v to_o himself_o he_o be_v make_v archbishop_n by_o a_o three_o he_o be_v absolve_v from_o all_o censure_n a_o four_o be_v to_o the_o suffragans_fw-la a_o five_o to_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n a_o six_o to_o the_o clergy_n of_o canterbury_n a_o seven_o to_o all_o the_o laity_n in_o his_o see_n a_o eight_o to_o all_o that_o hold_v land_n of_o it_o require_v they_o to_o receive_v and_o acknowledge_v he_o as_o archbishop_n all_o these_o bear_v date_n the_o 21th_o of_o february_n 1533._o by_o a_o nine_o bull_n date_v the_o 22th_o of_o february_n he_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v consecrate_v take_v the_o oath_n that_o be_v in_o the_o pontifical_a by_o a_o ten_o bull_n date_v the_o second_o of_o march_n the_o pall_n be_v send_v he_o and_o by_o a_o eleven_o of_o the_o same_o date_n the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n be_v require_v to_o put_v it_o on_o he_o these_o be_v the_o several_a artifices_fw-la to_o make_v composition_n high_a and_o to_o enrich_v the_o apostolic_a chamber_n for_o now_o that_o about_o which_o s._n peter_n glory_v that_o he_o have_v none_o of_o it_o neither_o silver_n nor_o gold_n be_v the_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n for_o which_o his_o successor_n be_v most_o careful_a when_o these_o bull_n be_v bring_v into_o england_n thomas_n cranmer_n be_v on_o the_o 13_o of_o march_v consecrate_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n exeter_z and_o s._n asaph_n but_o here_o a_o great_a scruple_n be_v move_v by_o he_o concern_v the_o oath_n that_o he_o be_v to_o swear_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o take_v and_o writer_n near_o that_o time_n say_v the_o dislike_n of_o that_o oath_n be_v one_o of_o the_o motive_n that_o make_v he_o so_o unwilling_o accept_v of_o that_o dignity_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o think_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n settle_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o that_o the_o obligation_n which_o that_o oath_n bring_v upon_o he_o will_v bind_v he_o up_o from_o do_v his_o duty_n both_o to_o god_n the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n but_o this_o be_v communicate_v to_o some_o of_o the_o canonist_n and_o casuist_n pope_n they_o find_v a_o temper_n that_o agree_v better_a with_o their_o maxim_n than_o cranmers_n sincerity_n which_o be_v that_o before_o he_o shall_v take_v the_o oath_n he_o shall_v make_v a_o good_a and_o formal_a protestation_n that_o he_o do_v not_o intend_v thereby_o to_o restrain_v himself_o from_o any_o thing_n that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o either_o by_o his_o duty_n to_o god_n or_o the_o king_n or_o the_o country_n and_o that_o he_o renounce_v every_o thing_n in_o it_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o any_o of_o these_o this_o protestation_n he_o make_v in_o s._n stephen_n chapel_n at_o westminster_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n before_o he_o be_v consecrate_v and_o he_o afterward_o repeat_v it_o when_o he_o take_v the_o oath_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o which_o if_o he_o do_v not_o whole_o save_v his_o integrity_n yet_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o intend_v no_o cheat_n but_o to_o act_v fair_o and_o above_o board_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v consecrate_v and_o have_v perform_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o his_o investiture_n he_o come_v and_o sit_v in_o the_o upper_a house_n of_o convocation_n cranm●●_n there_o be_v there_o at_o that_o time_n hot_a and_o earnest_a debate_n upon_o these_o two_o question_n whether_o it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o indispensable_a by_o the_o pope_n for_o a_o man_n to_o marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n he_o be_v dead_a without_o issue_n but_o have_v consummate_v the_o marriage_n and_o whether_o prince_n arthur_n have_v consummate_v his_o marriage_n with_o the_o queen_n as_o for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v bring_v first_o into_o the_o low_a
the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n so_o they_o raise_v their_o order_n or_o office_n so_o high_a as_o to_o make_v it_o equal_a with_o the_o order_n of_o a_o bishop_n but_o as_o they_o design_v to_o extol_v the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n so_o the_o canonist_n have_v as_o great_a a_o mind_n to_o depress_v the_o episcopal_a order_n they_o general_o write_v for_o preferment_n and_o the_o way_n to_o it_o be_v to_o exalt_v the_o papacy_n nothing_o can_v do_v that_o so_o effectual_o as_o to_o bring_v down_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n this_o only_a can_v justify_v the_o exemption_n of_o the_o monk_n and_o friar_n the_o pope_n set_v up_o legantine_n court_n and_o receive_v at_o first_o appeal_n and_o then_o original_a cause_n before_o they_o together_o with_o many_o other_o encroachment_n on_o their_o jurisdiction_n all_o which_o be_v unlawful_a if_o the_o bishop_n have_v by_o divine_a right_n jurisdiction_n in_o their_o diocese_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o lay_v they_o as_o low_a as_o can_v be_v and_o to_o make_v they_o think_v that_o the_o power_n they_o hold_v be_v rather_o as_o delegate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v than_o by_o a_o commission_n from_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n so_o that_o they_o look_v on_o the_o declare_v episcopal_a authority_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n as_o a_o blow_n that_o will_v be_v fatal_a to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v after_o this_o at_o trent_n use_v all_o possible_a endeavour_n to_o hinder_v any_o such_o decision_n it_o have_v be_v then_o the_o common_a stile_n of_o that_o age_n to_o reckon_v bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o the_o same_o office_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o at_o this_o time_n the_o clergy_n of_o this_o church_n the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v still_o leaven_v with_o the_o old_a superstition_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o not_o have_v enough_o of_o spare-time_n to_o examine_v lesser_a matter_n retain_v still_o the_o former_a phrase_n in_o this_o particular_a on_o this_o i_o have_v insist_v the_o more_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o little_o they_o have_v consider_v thing_n who_o be_v so_o far_o carry_v with_o their_o zeal_n against_o the_o establish_a government_n of_o this_o church_n as_o to_o make_v much_o use_n of_o some_o passage_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n that_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v distinct_a office_n for_o these_o be_v the_o very_a dregs_o of_o popery_n the_o one_o raise_v the_o priest_n high_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o other_o pull_v the_o bishop_n low_a for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o by_o such_o mean_n bring_v they_o almost_o to_o a_o equality_n so_o partial_a be_v some_o man_n to_o their_o particular_a conceit_n that_o they_o make_v use_v of_o the_o most_o mischievous_a topic_n when_o they_o can_v serve_v their_o turn●punc_n not_o consider_v how_o much_o further_o these_o argument_n will_v run_v if_o they_o ever_o admit_v they_o ad_fw-la page_n 255._o line_n 28._o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n do_v always_o press_v the_o king_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o religious_a league_n with_o they_o the_o first_o league_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o year_n 1536_o be_v conceive_v in_o general_a term_n against_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o common_a enemy_n and_o for_o set_v up_o true_a religion_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o do_v afterward_o send_v over_o ambassador_n to_o treat_v about_o particular_n and_o they_o have_v present_v a_o memorial_n of_o these_o there_o be_v conference_n appoint_v between_o they_o and_o some_o bishop_n and_o divine_n of_o this_o church_n i_o find_v no_o divine_n be_v send_v over_o hither_o but_o frederick_n miconius_n minister_n of_o gotha_n by_o who_o melanthon_n who_o can_v not_o be_v spare_v out_o of_o germany_n send_v several_a letter_n to_o the_o king_n the_o full_a and_o long_a of_o they_o will_v be_v find_v in_o the_o collection_n it_o be_v all_o to_o this_o purpose_n 6._o to_o persuade_v the_o king_n to_o go_v on_o vigorous_o in_o the_o reform_n of_o abuse_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o king_n send_v over_o the_o particular_n which_o they_o propose_v in_o order_n to_o a_o perfect_a agreement_n to_o gardiner_n who_o be_v then_o at_o paris_n upon_o which_o he_o send_v back_o his_o opinion_n touch_v they_o all_o the_o original_a of_o which_o under_o his_o own_o hand_n i_o have_v see_v but_o it_o relate_v so_o much_o to_o the_o other_o paper_n that_o be_v send_v he_o which_o i_o never_o see_v that_o without_o it_o his_o meaning_n can_v hardly_o be_v understand_v and_o therefore_o i_o have_v not_o put_v it_o in_o the_o collection_n the_o main_a thing_n in_o it_o at_o which_o it_o chief_o drive_v be_v to_o press_v the_o king_n to_o finish_v first_o a_o civil_a league_n with_o they_o and_o to_o leave_v those_o particular_n concern_v religion_n to_o be_v afterward_o treat_v of_o the_o king_n follow_v his_o advice_n so_o far_o as_o to_o write_v to_o the_o german_a prince_n to_o that_o effect_n but_o when_o the_o king_n declare_v his_o resolution_n to_o have_v the_o six_o article_n establish_v all_o that_o favour_v the_o reformation_n be_v much_o alarm_v at_o it_o and_o press_v their_o friend_n in_o germany_n to_o interpose_v with_o the_o king_n for_o prevent_v it_o i_o have_v see_v a_o original_a letter_n of_o hains_n dean_n of_o exeter_n in_o which_o he_o lament_v the_o sad_a effect_n that_o will_v follow_v on_o that_o act_n which_o be_v then_o prepare_v that_o all_o the_o corruption_n in_o the_o church_n rise_v from_o the_o establish_n some_o point_n without_o clear_a proof_n from_o scripture_n he_o wish_v the_o german_n will_v consider_v of_o it_o for_o if_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n shall_v make_v such_o a_o law_n this_o be_v a_o precedent_n for_o the_o emperor_n to_o make_v the_o like_a in_o the_o diet_n of_o the_o empire_n neither_o be_v the_o german_a ambassador_n backward_o in_o do_v their_o friend_n in_o england_n all_o the_o service_n they_o can_v for_o after_o they_o have_v hold_v several_a conference_n with_o these_o that_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o king_n to_o treat_v with_o they_o they_o find_v they_o can_v not_o prevail_v with_o they_o write_v a_o long_a and_o learned_a letter_n to_o the_o king_n against_o the_o take_n away_o the_o chalice_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o against_o private_a mass_n and_o the_o celibate_n of_o the_o clergy_n 7._o with_o some_o other_o abuse_n which_o the_o reader_n will_v find_v in_o the_o collection_n as_o it_o be_v copy_v from_o the_o original_a which_o i_o have_v see_v to_o this_o i_o have_v add_v the_o answer_n which_o the_o king_n write_v to_o it_o he_o employ_v tonstall_n bishop_n of_o duresm_n to_o draw_v it_o 8._o for_o i_o have_v see_v a_o rude_a draught_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o it_o write_v with_o his_o hand_n by_o both_o these_o compare_v together_o every_o indifferent_a reader_n will_v clear_o see_v the_o force_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o argument_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o art_n and_o shuffle_n that_o be_v use_v on_o the_o other_o side_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o act_n be_v past_a notwithstanding_o all_o their_o endeavour_n to_o the_o contrary_a they_o in_o a_o audience_n before_o the_o king_n represent_v the_o great_a concern_v their_o master_n will_v have_v when_o the_o king_n on_o who_o they_o have_v rely_v so_o much_o as_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n shall_v proceed_v with_o the_o severity_n express_v in_o that_o act_n against_o those_o that_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o doctrine_n and_o press_v the_o king_n earnest_o to_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o the_o execution_n of_o it_o the_o king_n promise_v he_o will_v see_v to_o it_o and_o that_o though_o he_o judge_v the_o act_n necessary_a to_o restrain_v the_o insolence_n of_o some_o of_o his_o subject_n yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v execute_v but_o upon_o great_a provocation_n he_o also_o propose_v the_o renew_v a_o civil_a league_n with_o they_o without_o mention_v matter_n of_o religion_n to_o this_o the_o prince_n make_v answer_v that_o the_o league_n as_o it_o be_v at_o first_o project_v be_v chief_o upon_o a_o design_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o without_o a_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o their_o league_n they_o can_v not_o alter_v it_o they_o lament_v this_o pass_v of_o the_o late_a act_n but_o write_v their_o thanks_o to_o the_o king_n for_o stop_v the_o execution_n of_o it_o and_o warn_v he_o that_o some_o of_o his_o bishop_n who_o set_v he_o on_o to_o these_o course_n be_v in_o their_o heart_n still_o for_o all_o the_o old_a abuse_n and_o for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o be_v press_v on_o the_o king_n to_o be_v severe_a against_o his_o best_a subject_n that_o they_o may_v thereby_o bring_v on_o a_o design_n which_o they_o can_v not_o hope_v
advantage_n a_o man_n of_o his_o temper_n will_v draw_v from_o it_o warham_n be_v lord_n chancellor_n the_o first_o seven_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n but_o retire_v to_o give_v place_n to_o this_o aspire_a favourite_n who_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o the_o great_a seal_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o interfering_n between_o the_o legantine_n and_o chancery_n court_v and_o perhaps_o it_o wrought_v somewhat_o on_o his_o vanity_n that_o even_o after_o he_o be_v cardinal_n warham_n as_o lord_n chancellor_n take_v place_n of_o he_o as_o appear_v from_o the_o entry_n make_v in_o the_o journal_o of_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v the_o seven_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n and_o afterward_o give_v he_o place_n as_o appear_v on_o many_o occasion_n particular_o in_o the_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n 1530_o set_v down_o by_o the_o lord_n herbert_n which_o the_o cardinal_n subscribe_v before_o warham_n we_o have_v nothing_o on_o record_n to_o show_v what_o a_o speaker_n he_o be_v for_o all_o the_o journal_o of_o parliament_n from_o the_o seven_o to_o the_o 25_o year_n of_o this_o king_n be_v lose_v but_o it_o be_v like_a he_o speak_v as_o his_o predecessor_n in_o that_o office_n warham_n do_v who_o speech_n as_o they_o be_v enter_v in_o the_o journal_o be_v sermon_n begin_v with_o a_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o expound_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o business_n they_o be_v to_o go_v upon_o stuff_v they_o with_o the_o most_o fulsome_a flattery_n of_o the_o king_n that_o be_v possible_a the_o next_o in_o favour_n and_o power_n be_v the_o lord_n treasurer_n restore_v to_o his_o father_n honour_n of_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n to_o who_o his_o son_n succeed_v in_o that_o office_n as_o well_o as_o in_o his_o hereditary_a honour_n and_o manage_v his_o interest_n with_o the_o king_n so_o dexterous_o that_o he_o stand_v in_o all_o the_o change_n that_o follow_v and_o continue_a lord_n treasurer_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o this_o king_n till_o near_o the_o end_n of_o it_o when_o he_o fall_v through_o jealousy_n rather_o than_o guilt_n this_o show_v how_o dexterous_a a_o man_n he_o be_v that_o can_v stand_v so_o long_o in_o that_o employment_n under_o such_o a_o king_n but_o the_o chief_a favourite_n in_o the_o king_n pleasure_n be_v charles_n brandon_n a_o gallant_a graceful_a person_n one_o of_o the_o strong_a man_n of_o the_o age_n and_o so_o a_o fit_a match_n for_o the_o king_n at_o his_o just_n and_o tilt_n which_o be_v the_o manly_a diversion_n of_o that_o time_n and_o the_o king_n take_v much_o pleasure_n in_o it_o be_v of_o a_o robu_v body_n and_o singular_o expert_a at_o it_o he_o who_o be_v so_o able_a to_o second_v he_o in_o these_o course_n grow_v mighty_o in_o his_o favour_n so_o that_o he_o make_v he_o first_o viscount_n lisle_n and_o some_o month_n after_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n pat_o nor_o be_v he_o less_o in_o the_o lady_n favour_n than_o the_o king_n for_o his_o sister_n the_o lady_n mary_n like_v he_o and_o be_v but_o so_o long_o marry_v to_o king_n lewis_n of_o france_n as_o to_o make_v her_o queen_n dowager_n of_o france_n she_o resolve_v to_o choose_v her_o second_o husband_n herself_o and_o cast_v her_o eye_n on_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n who_o be_v then_o send_v over_o to_o the_o court_n of_o france_n her_o brother_n have_v design_v the_o marriage_n between_o they_o yet_o will_v not_o open_o give_v his_o consent_n to_o it_o but_o she_o by_o a_o strange_a kind_n of_o woo_v prefix_v he_o the_o term_n of_o four_o day_n to_o gain_v her_o consent_n in_o which_o she_o tell_v he_o if_o he_o do_v not_o prevail_v he_o shall_v for_o ever_o lose_v all_o his_o hope_n of_o have_v she_o though_o after_o such_o a_o declaration_n he_o be_v like_a to_o meet_v with_o no_o great_a difficulty_n from_o she_o so_o they_o be_v marry_v 1515._o and_o the_o king_n be_v easy_o pacify_v and_o receive_v they_o into_o favour_n neither_o do_v his_o favour_n die_v with_o she_o for_o it_o continue_v all_o his_o life_n but_o he_o never_o meddle_v much_o in_o business_n 1533._o and_o by_o all_o that_o appear_v be_v a_o better_a courtier_n than_o statesman_n little_o needs_o be_v say_v of_o any_o other_o person_n more_o than_o will_v afterward_o occur_v the_o king_n love_v to_o raise_v mean_a person_n and_o upon_o the_o least_o distaste_n to_o throw_v they_o down_o and_o fall_v into_o disgrace_n he_o spare_v not_o to_o sacrifice_v they_o to_o public_a discontent_n his_o court_n be_v magnificent_a and_o his_o expense_n vast_a he_o indulge_v himself_o in_o his_o pleasure_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o child_n beside_o the_o lady_n mary_n fail_v by_o the_o queen_n he_o who_o of_o all_o thing_n desire_v issue_v most_o keep_v one_o elizabeth_n blunt_n by_o who_o he_o have_v henry_n fitzroy_n pa●_n who_o in_o the_o 17_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n he_o create_v earl_n of_o nottingham_n and_o the_o same_o day_n make_v he_o duke_n of_o richmond_n and_o somerset_n ●536_n and_o intend_v afterward_o to_o have_v put_v he_o in_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n after_o his_o other_o child_n but_o his_o death_n prevent_v it_o as_o for_o his_o parliament_n he_o take_v great_a care_n to_o keep_v a_o good_a understanding_n with_o they_o and_o chief_o with_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o by_o which_o mean_v he_o seldom_o fail_v to_o carry_v matter_n as_o he_o please_v among_o they_o only_o in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v in_o the_o 14_o and_o 15_o of_o his_o reign_n the_o demand_v of_o the_o subsidy_n towards_o the_o war_n with_o france_n be_v so_o high_a as_o 800000_o lib._n the_o 5_o of_o man_n good_n and_o land_n to_o be_v pay_v in_o four_o year_n and_o the_o cardinal_n be_v much_o hate_a there_o be_v great_a opposition_n make_v to_o it_o for_o which_o the_o cardinal_n blame_v sir_n thomas_n more_n much_o who_o be_v then_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o and_o find_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v be_v not_o above_o the_o half_a of_o what_o be_v ask_v go_v himself_o to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o and_o desire_v to_o hear_v the_o reason_n of_o those_o who_o oppose_v his_o demand_n that_o he_o may_v answer_v they_o but_o he_o be_v tell_v the_o order_n of_o their_o house_n be_v to_o reason_n only_o among_o themselves_o and_o so_o go_v away_o much_o dissatisfy_v it_o be_v with_o great_a difficulty_n that_o they_o obtain_v a_o subsidy_n of_o 3_o s._n in_o the_o lib._n to_o be_v pay_v in_o four_o year_n this_o disappointment_n it_o seem_v do_v so_o offend_v the_o cardinal_n that_o as_o no_o parliament_n have_v be_v call_v for_o seven_o year_n before_o so_o there_o be_v none_o summon_v for_o seven_o year_n after_o and_o thus_o stand_v the_o civil_a government_n of_o england_n in_o the_o 19_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n when_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o divorce_n be_v first_o move_v but_o i_o shall_v next_o open_v the_o state_n of_o affair_n in_o reference_n to_o religious_a and_o spiritual_a concern_v scholar_n king_n henry_n be_v breed_v with_o more_o care_n than_o have_v be_v usual_o bestow_v on_o the_o education_n of_o prince_n for_o many_o age_n who_o have_v be_v only_o train_v up_o to_o those_o exercise_n that_o prepare_v they_o to_o war_n and_o if_o they_o can_v read_v and_o write_v more_o be_v not_o expect_v of_o they_o but_o learning_n begin_v now_o to_o flourish_v and_o as_o the_o house_n of_o medici_n in_o florence_n have_v great_a honour_n by_o the_o protection_n it_o give_v to_o learned_a man_n so_o other_o prince_n everywhere_o cherish_v the_o muse_n king_n henry_n the_o seven_o though_o illiterate_a himself_o yet_o take_v care_n to_o have_v his_o child_n instruct_v in_o good_a letter_n and_o it_o general_o pass_v current_n that_o he_o breed_v his_o second_o son_n a_o scholar_n have_v design_v he_o to_o be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n but_o that_o have_v no_o foundation_n for_o the_o writer_n of_o that_o time_n tell_v that_o his_o elder_a brother_n prince_n arthur_n be_v also_o breed_v a_o scholar_n and_o all_o the_o instruction_n king_n henry_n have_v in_o learning_n must_v have_v be_v after_o his_o brother_n be_v dead_a when_o that_o design_n have_v vanish_v with_o his_o life_n for_o he_o be_v bear_v the_o 18_o of_o june_n 1491._o and_o prince_n arthur_n die_v the_o second_o of_o april_n 1502._o he_o be_v not_o full_a eleven_o year_n of_o age_n when_o he_o become_v prince_n of_o wales_n at_o which_o age_n prince_n have_v seldom_o make_v any_o great_a progress_n in_o learning_n but_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o judge_v either_o that_o it_o will_v make_v his_o son_n great_a prince_n and_o fit_a for_o the_o management_n of_o their_o affair_n or_o be_v jealous_a of_o their_o look_v too_o early_o into_o business_n or_o their_o pretend_v to_o the_o crown_n
upon_o their_o mother_n title_n which_o may_v have_v be_v a_o dangerous_a competition_n to_o he_o that_o be_v so_o little_o belove_v by_o his_o subject_n take_v this_o method_n for_o amuse_v they_o with_o other_o thing_n thence_o it_o be_v that_o his_o son_n be_v the_o most_o learned_a prince_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o many_o age_n and_o deserve_v the_o title_n beau-clerke_n on_o a_o better_a account_n than_o his_o predecessor_n that_o long_o before_o have_v carry_v it_o the_o learning_n then_o in_o credit_n be_v either_o that_o of_o the_o school_n about_o abstruse_a question_n of_o divinity_n which_o from_o the_o day_n of_o lombard_n be_v debate_v and_o descant_v on_o with_o much_o subtlety_n and_o nicety_n and_o exercise_v all_o speculative_a divine_n or_o the_o study_n of_o the_o canon-law_n which_o be_v the_o way_n to_o business_n and_o preferment_n to_o the_o former_a of_o these_o the_o king_n be_v much_o addict_v and_o delight_v to_o read_v often_o in_o thomas_n 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o make_a cardinal_n wolsey_n more_o acceptable_a to_o he_o who_o be_v 〈◊〉_d conversant_a in_o that_o sort_n of_o learning_n he_o love_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d tongue_n which_o make_v he_o be_v so_o kind_a to_o erasmus_n that_o be_v the_o great_a res●●●er_n of_o it_o and_o to_o polidore_n virgil_n though_o neither_o of_o these_o make_v their_o court_n dextrous_o with_o the_o cardinal_n which_o do_v much_o intercept_v the_o king_n favour_n to_o they_o so_o that_o the_o one_o leave_v england_n and_o the_o other_o be_v but_o co●rsly_o use_v in_o it_o who_o have_v sufficient_o revenge_v himself_o upon_o the_o cardinal_n memory_n the_o philosophy_n then_o in_o fashion_n be_v so_o intermix_v with_o their_o divinity_n that_o the_o king_n understand_v it_o too_o and_o be_v also_o a_o good_a musician_n as_o appear_v by_o two_o whole_a mass_n which_o he_o compose_v he_o never_o write_v well_o but_o scrawl_v so_o that_o his_o hand_n be_v scarce_o legible_a be_v thus_o incline_v to_o learning_n he_o be_v much_o court_v by_o all_o hungry_a scholar_n who_o general_o over_o europe_n dedicate_v their_o book_n to_o he_o with_o such_o flatter_a epistle_n that_o it_o very_o much_o lessen_v he_o to_o see_v how_o he_o delight_v in_o such_o stuff_n for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o take_v pleasure_n in_o it_o and_o reward_v they_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o other_o shall_v have_v be_v every_o year_n write_v after_o such_o ill_a copy_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n flattery_n wrought_v most_o on_o he_o and_o no_o sort_n of_o flattery_n please_v he_o better_o than_o to_o have_v his_o great_a learning_n and_o wisdom_n commend_v and_o in_o this_o his_o parliament_n his_o courtier_n his_o chaplain_n foreigner_n and_o native_n all_o seem_v to_o vie_v who_o shall_v exceed_v most_o and_o come_v to_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o a_o style_n which_o be_v scarce_o fit_a to_o be_v use_v to_o any_o creature_n but_o he_o design_v to_o entail_v these_o praise_n on_o his_o memory_n cherish_v churchman_n more_o than_o any_o king_n in_o england_n have_v ever_o do_v he_o also_o court_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o constant_a submission_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n make_v the_o pope_n interest_n his_o own_o and_o make_v war_n and_o peace_n as_o they_o desire_v he_o so_o that_o have_v he_o die_v any_o time_n before_o the_o 19_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n he_o can_v scarce_o have_v escape_v be_v canonize_v notwithstanding_o all_o his_o fault_n for_o he_o abound_v in_o those_o virtue_n which_o have_v give_v saintship_n to_o king_n for_o near_o 1000_o year_n together_o and_o have_v do_v more_o than_o they_o all_o do_v by_o write_v a_o book_n for_o the_o roman_a faith_n england_n have_v for_o above_o 300_o year_n be_v the_o tame_a part_n of_o christendom_n to_o the_o papal_a authority_n and_o have_v be_v according_o deal_v with_o matter_n but_o though_o the_o parliament_n and_o two_o or_o three_o hie-spirited_a king_n have_v give_v some_o interruption_n to_o the_o cruel_a exaction_n and_o other_o illegal_a proceed_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n yet_o that_o court_n always_o gain_v their_o design_n in_o the_o end_n but_o even_o in_o this_o king_n day_n the_o crown_n be_v not_o quite_o strip_v of_o all_o its_o authority_n over_o spiritual_a person_n the_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n which_o have_v be_v original_o give_v by_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o pastoral_n ring_n and_o staff_n by_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v after_o some_o opposition_n wring_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n yet_o i_o find_v they_o retain_v another_o thing_n which_o upon_o the_o matter_n be_v the_o same_o when_o any_o see_v be_v vacant_a a_o writ_n be_v issue_v out_o of_o the_o chancery_n for_o seize_v on_o all_o the_o temporalty_n of_o the_o bishopric_n temporalitatis_fw-la and_o then_o the_o king_n recommend_v one_o to_o the_o pope_n upon_o which_o his_o bull_n be_v expede_v at_o rome_n and_o so_o by_o a_o warrant_n from_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v consecrate_v and_o invest_v in_o the_o spiritualty_n of_o the_o see_v but_o be_v to_o appear_v before_o the_o king_n either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o proxy_n and_o renounce_v every_o clause_n in_o his_o letter_n and_o bull_n that_o be_v or_o may_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o crown_n or_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o be_v to_o swear_v fealty_n and_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n and_o after_o this_o a_o new_a writ_n be_v issue_v out_o of_o the_o chancery_n bear_v that_o this_o be_v do_v and_o that_o thereupon_o the_o temporalty_n shall_v be_v restore_v temporalitatis_fw-la of_o this_o there_o be_v so_o many_o precedent_n in_o the_o record_n that_o every_o one_o that_o have_v search_v they_o must_v needs_o find_v they_o in_o every_o year_n but_o when_o this_o begin_v i_o leave_v to_o the_o more_o learned_a in_o the_o law_n to_o discover_v 15._o and_o for_o proof_n of_o it_o the_o reader_n will_v find_v in_o the_o collection_n the_o full_a record_n which_o i_o meet_v with_o concern_v it_o in_o henry_n the_o seven_o his_o reign_n of_o cardinal_n adrian_n be_v invest_v in_o the_o bishopric_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o matter_n the_o king_n then_o dispose_v of_o all_o bishopric_n keep_v that_o still_o in_o their_o own_o hand_n which_o make_v they_o most_o desire_v in_o those_o age_n and_o so_o have_v the_o bishop_n much_o at_o their_o dovotion_n but_o king_n henry_n in_o a_o great_a degree_n part_v with_o this_o by_o the_o abovementioned_a power_n grant_v to_o cardinal_n wolsey_n who_o be_v legate_n as_o well_o as_o lord_n chancellor_n it_o be_v think_v a_o great_a error_n in_o government_n to_o lodge_v such_o a_o trust_n with_o he_o which_o may_v have_v pass_v into_o a_o precedent_n for_o other_o legate_n pretend_v to_o the_o same_o power_n since_o the_o papal_a greatness_n have_v thus_o rise_v and_o oft_o upon_o weak_a ground_n to_o the_o height_n it_o be_v then_o at_o yet_o the_o king_n have_v no_o mind_n to_o suffer_v the_o law_n make_v against_o the_o sue_n out_o of_o bull_n in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n without_o his_o leave_n to_o be_v neglect_v pat._n for_o i_o find_v several_a licenses_n grant_v to_o sue_v bull_n in_o that_o court_n bear_v for_o their_o preamble_n the_o statute_n of_o the_o 16_o of_o richard_n the_o second_o against_o the_o pope_n pretend_a power_n in_o england_n but_o the_o immunity_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o occasion_v great_a complaint_n and_o good_a cause_n there_o be_v for_o they_o for_o it_o be_v ordinary_a for_o person_n after_o the_o great_a crime_n to_o get_v into_o order_n and_o then_o not_o only_o what_o be_v pass_v must_v be_v forgive_v they_o but_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v question_v for_o any_o crime_n after_o holy_a order_n give_v till_o they_o be_v first_o degrade_v and_o till_o that_o be_v do_v they_o be_v the_o bishop_n prisoner_n whereupon_o there_o rise_v a_o great_a dispute_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n of_o which_o none_o of_o our_o historian_n have_v take_v any_o notice_n i_o shall_v give_v a_o full_a account_n of_o it_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o in_o his_o four_o parliament_n do_v a_o little_a lessen_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o clergy_n report_v enact_v that_o clerk_n convict_v shall_v be_v burn_v in_o the_o hand_n but_o this_o not_o prove_v a_o sufficient_a restraint_n it_o be_v enact_v in_o parliament_n in_o the_o four_o year_n of_o this_o king_n that_o all_o murderer_n and_o robber_n shall_v be_v deny_v the_o benefit_n of_o their_o clergy_n but_o though_o this_o seem_v a_o very_a just_a law_n yet_o to_o make_v it_o pass_v through_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n they_o add_v two_o proviso_n to_o it_o the_o one_o for_o except_v all_o such_o as_o be_v within_o
the_o holy_a order_n of_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacon_n the_o other_o that_o the_o act_n shall_v only_o be_v in_o force_n till_o the_o next_o parliament_n with_o these_o proviso_n it_o be_v unanimous_o assent_v to_o by_o the_o lord_n on_o the_o 26_o jan._n 1513._o and_o be_v agree_v to_o by_o the_o commons_o the_o royal_a assent_n make_v it_o a_o law_n pursuant_n to_o which_o many_o murderer_n and_o felon_n be_v deny_v their_o clergy_n and_o the_o law_n pass_v on_o they_o to_o the_o great_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n but_o this_o give_v great_a offence_n to_o the_o clergy_n who_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o suffer_v their_o immunity_n to_o be_v touch_v or_o lessen_v and_o judge_v that_o if_o the_o laity_n make_v bold_a with_o inferior_a order_n they_o will_v proceed_v further_o even_o against_o sacred_a order_n therefore_o as_o their_o opposition_n be_v such_o that_o the_o act_n not_o be_v continue_v do_v determine_v at_o the_o next_o parliament_n that_o be_v in_o the_o 5_o year_n of_o the_o king_n so_o they_o not_o satisfy_v with_o that_o resolve_v to_o fix_v a_o censure_n on_o that_o act_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o franchise_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o the_o abbot_n of_o winchelcomb_n being_n more_o forward_o than_o the_o rest_n during_o the_o session_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o 7_o year_n of_o this_o king_n reign_n in_o a_o sermon_n at_o paul_n cross_n say_v open_o that_o that_o act_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o that_o all_o who_o assent_v to_o it_o as_o well_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a person_n have_v by_o so_o do_v incur_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o confirmation_n of_o his_o opinion_n he_o publish_v a_o book_n to_o prove_v that_o all_o clerk_n whether_o of_o the_o great_a or_o low_a order_n be_v sacred_a and_o exempt_v from_o all_o temporal_a punishment_n by_o the_o secular_a judge_n even_o in_o criminal_a case_n this_o make_v great_a noise_n and_o all_o the_o temporal_a lord_n with_o the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o desire_v the_o king_n to_o suppress_v the_o grow_a insolence_n of_o the_o clergy_n so_o there_o be_v a_o hear_n of_o the_o matter_n before_o the_o king_n with_o all_o the_o judge_n and_o the_o king_n temporal_a council_n doctor_n standish_n guardian_n of_o the_o mendicant_a friar_n in_o london_n afterward_o bishop_n of_o saint_n asaph_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o king_n spiritual_a council_n argue_v that_o by_o the_o law_n clerk_n have_v be_v still_o convene_v and_o judge_v in_o the_o king_n court_n for_o civil_a crime_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o either_o in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o the_o church_n inconsistent_a with_o it_o and_o that_o the_o public_a good_a of_o the_o society_n which_o be_v chief_o drive_v at_o by_o all_o law_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v to_o all_o other_o thing_n require_v that_o crime_n shall_v be_v punish_v but_o the_o abbot_n of_o winchelcomb_n be_v counsel_n for_o the_o clergy_n except_v to_o this_o and_o say_v there_o be_v a_o decree_n make_v by_o the_o church_n express_o to_o the_o contrary_a to_o which_o all_o aught_o to_o pay_v obedience_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o try_v of_o clerk_n in_o the_o civil_a court_n be_v a_o sin_n in_o itself_o standish_n upon_o this_o turn_v to_o the_o king_n and_o say_v god_n forbid_v that_o all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v bind_v it_o seem_v the_o bishop_n think_v not_o so_o for_o though_o there_o be_v a_o decree_n that_o they_o shall_v reside_v at_o their_o cathedral_n all_o the_o festival_n of_o the_o year_n yet_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o do_v it_o not_o add_v that_o no_o decree_n can_v have_v any_o force_n in_o england_n till_o it_o be_v receive_v there_o and_o that_o this_o decree_n be_v never_o receive_v in_o england_n but_o that_o as_o well_o since_o the_o make_n of_o it_o as_o before_z clerk_n have_v be_v try_v for_o crime_n in_o the_o civil_a court_n to_o this_o the_o abbot_n make_v no_o answer_n but_o bring_v a_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o exemption_n to_o have_v come_v from_o our_o saviour_n word_n nolite_fw-la tangere_fw-la christos_fw-la meos_fw-la touch_v not_o my_o anoint_v and_o therefore_o prince_n order_v clerk_n to_o be_v arrest_v and_o bring_v before_o their_o court_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n against_o which_o no_o custom_n can_v take_v place_n standish_n reply_v these_o word_n be_v never_o say_v by_o our_o saviour_n but_o be_v put_v by_o david_n in_o his_o psalter_n 1000_o year_n before_o christ_n and_o he_o say_v these_o word_n have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o civil_a judicatories_n but_o because_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v then_o wicked_a and_o but_o a_o small_a number_n believe_v the_o law_n they_o be_v a_o charge_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n not_o to_o do_v they_o harm_n but_o though_o the_o abbot_n have_v be_v very_o violent_a and_o confident_a of_o his_o be_v able_a to_o confound_v all_o that_o hold_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n yet_o he_o make_v no_o answer_n to_o this_o the_o laity_n that_o be_v present_a be_v confirm_v in_o their_o former_a opinion_n by_o hear_v the_o matter_n thus_o argue_v move_v the_o bishop_n to_o order_v the_o abbot_n to_o renounce_v his_o former_a opinion_n and_o recant_v his_o sermon_n at_o paul_n cross._n but_o they_o flat_o refuse_v to_o do_v it_o and_o say_v they_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n to_o maintain_v the_o abbot_n opinion_n in_o every_o point_n of_o it_o great_a heat_n follow_v upon_o this_o during_o the_o sit_v of_o the_o parliament_n of_o which_o there_o be_v a_o very_a partial_a entry_n make_v in_o the_o journal_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n and_o no_o wonder_n the_o clerk_n of_o the_o parliament_n doctor_n tylor_n doctor_n of_o the_o canon-law_n be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n speaker_n of_o the_o low_a house_n of_o convocation_n fox_n the_o entry_n be_v in_o these_o word_n in_o this_o parliament_n and_o convocation_n there_o be_v most_o dangerous_a contention_n between_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o secular_a power_n about_o the_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n one_o standish_n a_o minor_a friar_n be_v the_o instrument_n and_o promoter_n of_o all_o that_o mischief_n but_o a_o passage_n ●ell_o out_o that_o make_v this_o matter_n be_v more_o full_o prosecute_v in_o the_o michaelmas-term_n one_o richard_n hun_n a_o merchant-taylor_n in_o london_n be_v question_v by_o a_o clerk_n in_o middlesex_n for_o a_o mortuary_n pretend_v to_o be_v due_a for_o a_o child_n of_o his_o that_o die_v 5_o week_n old_a the_o clerk_n claim_v the_o beere_a sheet_n and_o hun_n refuse_v to_o give_v it_o upon_o that_o he_o be_v sue_v but_o his_o counsel_n advise_v he_o to_o sue_v the_o clerk_n in_o a_o praemunire_n for_o bring_v the_o king_n subject_n before_o a_o foreign_a court_n the_o spiritual_a court_n sit_v by_o authority_n from_o the_o legate_n this_o touch_v the_o clergy_n so_o in_o the_o quick_a that_o they_o use_v all_o the_o art_n they_o can_v to_o fasten_v heresy_n on_o he_o and_o understand_v that_o he_o have_v wickliff_n bible_n upon_o that_o he_o be_v attach_v of_o heresy_n and_o put_v in_o the_o lollard_n tower_n at_o paul_n and_o examine_v upon_o some_o article_n object_v to_o he_o by_o fitz-iames_n then_o bishop_n of_o london_n he_o deny_v they_o as_o they_o be_v charge●_n against_o he_o but_o acknowledge_v he_o have_v say_v some_o word_n sound_v that_o way_n for_o which_o he_o be_v sorry_a and_o ask_v god_n mercy_n and_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o bishop_n correction_n upon_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v enjoin_v penance_n and_o set_v at_o liberty_n but_o he_o persist_v still_o in_o his_o suit_n in_o the_o king_n court_n they_o use_v he_o most_o cruel_o on_o the_o four_o of_o december_n he_o be_v find_v hang_v in_o the_o chamber_n where_o he_o be_v keep_v prison_n prisoner_n and_o doctor_n horsey_n chancellor_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n with_o the_o other_o officer_n who_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o prison_n give_v it_o out_o that_o he_o have_v hang_v himself_o but_o the_o coroner_n of_o london_n come_v to_o hold_v a_o inquest_n on_o the_o dead_a body_n they_o find_v he_o hang_v so_o loose_a and_o in_o a_o silk_n girdle_n that_o they_o clear_o perceive_v he_o be_v kill_v they_o also_o find_v his_o neck_n have_v be_v break_v as_o they_o judge_v with_o a_o iron_n chain_n for_o the_o skin_n be_v all_o fret_a and_o cut_v they_o see_v some_o stream_n of_o blood_n about_o his_o body_n beside_o several_a other_o evidence_n which_o make_v it_o clear_a he_o have_v not_o murder_v himself_o whereupon_o they_o do_v acquit_v the_o dead_a body_n and_o
the_o proceed_n in_o the_o king_n bench_n since_o there_o be_v no_o justice_n do_v and_o all_o think_v the_o king_n seem_v more_o careful_a to_o maintain_v his_o prerogative_n than_o to_o do_v justice_n this_o i_o have_v relate_v the_o more_o full_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v have_v great_a influence_n on_o people_n mind_n and_o to_o have_v dispose_v they_o much_o to_o the_o change_n that_o follow_v afterward_o how_o these_o thing_n be_v enter_v in_o the_o book_n of_o convocation_n can_v be_v now_o know_v for_o among_o the_o other_o sad_a loss_n sustain_v in_o the_o late_a burn_a of_o london_n this_o be_v one_o that_o almost_o all_o the_o register_n of_o the_o spiritual_a court_n be_v burn_v some_o few_o of_o the_o arch-bishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o bishop_n of_o london_n register_n be_v only_o preserve_v but_o have_v compare_v fox_n his_o account_n of_o this_o and_o some_o other_o matter_n and_o find_v it_o exact_o according_a to_o the_o register_n that_o be_v preserve_v i_o shall_v the_o more_o confident_o build_v on_o what_o he_o publish_v from_o those_o record_n that_o be_v now_o lose_v they_o this_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n in_o the_o first_o 18_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n that_o seem_v to_o lessen_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o in_o all_o other_o matter_n he_o be_v a_o most_o faithful_a son_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n pope_n julius_n soon_o after_o his_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n send_v he_o a_o golden_a rose_n with_o a_o letter_n to_o archbishop_n warham_n to_o deliver_v it_o d._n and_o though_o such_o present_n may_v seem_v fit_a for_o young_a child_n than_o for_o man_n of_o discretion_n yet_o the_o king_n be_v much_o delight_v with_o it_o and_o to_o show_v his_o gratitude_n reg._n there_o be_v a_o treaty_n conclude_v the_o year_n follow_v between_o the_o king_n and_o ferdinand_n of_o arragon_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o papacy_n against_o the_o french_a king_n and_o when_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o council_n that_o the_o french_a king_n and_o some_o other_o prince_n and_o cardinal_n have_v call_v first_o to_o pisa_n which_o be_v afterward_o translate_v to_o milan_n and_o then_o to_o lion_n that_o summon_v the_o pope_n to_o appear_v before_o they_o 1512._o and_o suspend_v his_o authority_n pope_n julius_n call_v another_o council_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o lateran_n the_o king_n send_v the_o bishop_n of_o worcester_n and_o rochester_n the_o prior_n of_o st._n johns_n and_o the_o abbot_n of_o winchelcomb_n to_o sit_v in_o that_o council_n in_o which_o there_o be_v such_o a_o representative_a of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o have_v be_v for_o several_a of_o the_o latter_a age_n in_o the_o western_a church_n in_o which_o a_o few_o bishop_n pack_v out_o of_o several_a kingdom_n and_o many_o italian_a bishop_n with_o a_o vast_a number_n of_o abbot_n prior_n and_o other_o inferior_a dignify_v clergyman_n be_v bring_v to_o confirm_v together_o whatever_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o enact_v which_o pass_v easy_o among_o they_o be_v send_v over_o the_o world_n with_o a_o stamp_n of_o sacred_a authority_n as_o the_o decree_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o holy_a universal_a church_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n nor_o be_v there_o a_o worse_a understanding_n between_o this_o king_n and_o pope_n leo_n the_o 10_o the_o that_o succeed_v julius_n who_o do_v also_o compliment_v he_o with_o those_o papal_a present_n of_o rose_n and_o at_o his_o desire_n make_v wolsey_n a_o cardinal_n and_o above_o all_o other_o thing_n oblige_v he_o by_o confer_v on_o he_o the_o title_n of_o defender_n of_o the_o faith_n 11._o upon_o the_o present_n to_o the_o pope_n his_o book_n against_o luther_n in_o a_o pompous_a letter_n sign_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o 27_o cardinal_n in_o which_o the_o king_n take_v great_a pleasure_n affect_v it_o always_o beyond_o all_o his_o other_o title_n herbert_n though_o several_a of_o the_o former_a king_n of_o england_n have_v carry_v the_o same_o title_n as_o spelman_n inform_v we_o so_o easy_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o pope_n to_o oblige_v prince_n in_o those_o day_n when_o a_o title_n or_o a_o rose_n be_v think_v a_o sufficient_a recompense_n for_o the_o great_a service_n the_o cardinal_n govern_v all_o temporal_a affair_n as_o he_o do_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o his_o authority_n be_v absolute_a in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n which_o seem_v natural_o to_o lie_v within_o his_o province_n yet_o warham_n make_v some_o opposition_n to_o he_o and_o complain_v to_o the_o king_n of_o his_o encroach_a too_o much_o in_o his_o legantine_n court_v upon_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o the_o thing_n be_v clear_o make_v out_o the_o king_n chide_v the_o cardinal_n sharp_o for_o it_o who_o ever_o after_o that_o hate_a warham_n in_o his_o heart_n yet_o he_o proceed_v more_o wary_o for_o the_o future_a but_o the_o cardinal_n draw_v the_o hatred_n of_o the_o clergy_n upon_o himself_o impeachment_n chief_o by_o a_o bull_n which_o he_o obtain_v from_o rome_n give_v he_o authority_n to_o visit_v all_o monastery_n and_o all_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n and_o to_o dispense_v with_o all_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n for_o one_o whole_a year_n after_o the_o date_n of_o the_o bull._n the_o power_n that_o be_v lodge_v in_o he_o by_o this_o bull_n be_v not_o more_o invidious_a than_o the_o word_n in_o which_o it_o be_v conceive_v be_v offensive_a for_o the_o preamble_n of_o it_o be_v full_a of_o severe_a reflection_n against_o the_o manner_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o clergy_n who_o be_v say_v in_o it_o to_o have_v be_v deliver_v over_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n this_o as_o it_o be_v a_o public_a defame_v they_o so_o how_o true_a soever_o it_o may_v be_v all_o think_v it_o do_v not_o become_v the_o cardinal_n who_o vice_n be_v notorious_a and_o scandalous_a to_o tax_v other_o who_o fault_n be_v neither_o so_o great_a nor_o so_o eminent_a as_o he_o be_v virgil_n he_o do_v also_o affect_v a_o magnificence_n and_o greatness_n not_o only_o in_o his_o habit_n be_v the_o first_o clergyman_n in_o england_n that_o wear_v silk_n but_o in_o his_o family_n his_o train_n and_o other_o piece_n of_o state_n equal_a to_o that_o of_o king_n and_o even_o in_o perform_v divine_a office_n and_o say_v mass_n he_o do_v it_o with_o the_o same_o ceremony_n that_o the_o pope_n use_n who_o judge_v themselves_o so_o near_o relate_v to_o god_n that_o those_o humble_a act_n of_o adoration_n which_o be_v devotion_n in_o other_o person_n will_v abase_v they_o too_o much_o he_o have_v not_o only_a bishop_n and_o abbot_n to_o serve_v he_o but_o even_o duke_n and_o earl_n to_o give_v he_o the_o water_n and_o the_o towel_n he_o have_v certain_o a_o vast_a mind_n and_o he_o see_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o clergy_n give_v so_o great_a scandal_n and_o their_o ignorance_n be_v so_o profound_a that_o unless_o some_o effectual_a way_n be_v take_v for_o correct_v these_o they_o must_v needs_o fall_v into_o great_a disesteem_a with_o the_o people_n for_o though_o he_o take_v great_a liberty_n himself_o and_o perhaps_o according_a to_o the_o maxim_n of_o the_o canonist_n he_o judge_v cardinal_n as_o prince_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o comprehend_v within_o ordinary_a ecclesiastical_a law_n reformation_n yet_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v design_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n by_o all_o the_o mean_n he_o can_v think_v of_o except_z the_o giving_z they_o a_o good_a example_n therefore_o he_o intend_v to_o visit_v all_o the_o monastery_n of_o england_n that_o so_o discover_v their_o corruption_n he_o may_v the_o better_o justify_v the_o design_n he_o have_v to_o suppress_v most_o of_o they_o and_o convert_v they_o into_o bishopric_n cathedral_n collegiate_n church_n and_o college_n for_o which_o end_n he_o procure_v the_o bull_n from_o rome_n but_o he_o be_v divert_v from_o make_v any_o use_n of_o it_o by_o some_o who_o advise_v he_o rather_o to_o suppress_v monastery_n by_o the_o pope_n authority_n monastery_n than_o proceed_v in_o a_o method_n which_o will_v raise_v great_a hatred_n against_o himself_o cast_v foul_a aspersion_n on_o religious_a order_n and_o give_v the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n great_a advantage_n against_o it_o yet_o he_o have_v communicate_v his_o design_n to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o secretary_n cromwell_n understanding_n it_o be_v thereby_o instruct_v how_o to_o proceed_v afterward_o when_o they_o go_v about_o the_o total_a suppression_n of_o the_o monastery_n the_o summon_v of_o convocation_n he_o assume_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o legantine_n power_n convocation_n of_o these_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n the_o first_o be_v call_v by_o the_o king_n for_o with_o the_o writ_n for_o a_o parliament_n there_o go_v out_o always_o a_o summons_n to_o the_o two_o arch-bishop_n for_o call_v a_o convocation_n of_o
bearer_n that_o you_o do_v the_o which_o i_o pray_v god_n long_o to_o continue_v as_o i_o be_o most_o bind_v to_o pray_v for_o i_o do_v know_v the_o great_a pain_n and_o trouble_n that_o you_o have_v take_v for_o i_o both_o day_n and_o night_n be_v never_o like_a to_o be_v recompense_v on_o my_o part_n but_o alone_a in_o love_v you_o next_o unto_o the_o king_n grace_n above_o all_o creature_n live_v and_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o the_o daily_a proof_n of_o my_o deed_n shall_v manifest_o declare_v and_o affirm_v my_o writing_n to_o be_v true_a and_o i_o do_v trust_v you_o do_v think_v the_o same_o my_o lord_n i_o do_v assure_v you_o i_o do_v long_o to_o hear_v from_o you_o news_n of_o the_o legate_n for_o i_o do_v hope_n and_o they_o come_v from_o you_o they_o shall_v be_v very_o good_a and_o i_o be_o sure_a you_o desire_v it_o as_o much_o as_o i_o and_o more_o and_o it_o be_v possible_a as_o i_o know_v it_o be_v not_o and_o thus_o remain_v in_o a_o steadfast_a hope_n i_o make_v a_o end_n of_o my_o letter_n write_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o she_o that_o be_v most_o bind_v to_o be_v the_o writer_n of_o this_o letter_n will_v not_o cease_v till_o she_o have_v cause_v i_o likewise_o to_o set_v to_o my_o hand_n desire_v you_o he_o though_o it_o be_v short_a to_o take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n i_o ensure_v you_o there_o be_v neither_o of_o we_o but_o that_o great_o desire_v to_o see_v you_o and_o much_o more_o joyous_a to_o hear_v that_o you_o have_v escape_v this_o plague_n so_o well_o trust_v the_o fury_n thereof_o to_o be_v pass_v special_o with_o they_o that_o keep_v good_a diet_n as_o i_o trust_v you_o do_v the_o not_o hear_v of_o the_o legate_n arrival_n in_o france_n cause_v we_o somewhat_o to_o muse_v notwithstanding_o we_o trust_v by_o your_o diligence_n and_o vigilancy_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o almighty_a god_n short_o to_o be_v ease_v out_o of_o that_o trouble_n no_o more_o to_o you_o at_o this_o time_n but_o that_o i_o pray_v god_n send_v you_o as_o good_a health_n and_o prosperity_n as_o the_o writer_n will_v by_o your_o love_a sovereign_n and_o friend_n henry_n k._n your_o humble_a servant_n anne_n boleyn_n 1528._o my_o lord_n in_o my_o most_o humble_a wise_n that_o my_o poor_a heart_n can_v think_v i_o do_v thank_v your_o grace_n for_o your_o kind_a letter_n and_o for_o your_o rich_a and_o goodly_a present_n the_o which_o i_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o deserve_v without_o your_o help_n of_o the_o which_o i_o have_v hitherto_o have_v so_o great_a plenty_n that_o all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n i_o be_o most_o bind_v of_o all_o creature_n next_o the_o king_n grace_n to_o love_v and_o serve_v your_o grace_n of_o the_o which_o i_o beseech_v you_o never_o to_o doubt_v that_o ever_o i_o shall_v vary_v from_o this_o thought_n as_o long_o as_o any_o breath_n be_v in_o my_o body_n and_o as_o touch_v your_o grace_n trouble_n with_o the_o sweat_n i_o thank_v our_o lord_n that_o they_o that_o i_o desire_v and_o pray_v for_o be_v escape_v and_o that_o be_v the_o king_n and_o you_o not_o doubt_v but_o that_o god_n have_v preserve_v you_o both_o for_o great_a cause_n know_v alone_a of_o his_o high_a wisdom_n and_o as_o for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o legate_n i_o desire_v that_o much_o and_o if_o it_o be_v god_n pleasure_n i_o pray_v he_o to_o send_v this_o matter_n short_o to_o a_o good_a end_n and_o then_o i_o trust_v my_o lord_n to_o recompense_v part_n of_o your_o great_a pain_n in_o the_o which_o i_o must_v require_v you_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n to_o accept_v my_o goodwill_n in_o the_o stead_n of_o the_o power_n the_o which_o must_v proceed_v partly_o from_o you_o as_o our_o lord_n know_v to_o who_o i_o beseech_v to_o send_v you_o long_a life_n with_o continuance_n in_o honour_n write_a with_o the_o hand_n of_o she_o that_o be_v most_o bind_v to_o be_v your_o humble_a and_o obedient_a servant_n anne_n boleyn_n 14_o the_o cardinal_n hear_v that_o campegius_fw-la have_v the_o decretal_a bull_n commit_v to_o his_o trust_n to_o be_v show_v only_o to_o the_o king_n and_o himself_o write_v to_o the_o ambassador_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a it_o shall_v be_v also_o show_v to_o some_o of_o the_o king_n council_n not_o to_o make_v any_o use_n of_o it_o but_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v understand_v how_o to_o manage_v the_o process_n better_o by_o it_o this_o he_o beg_v may_v be_v trust_v to_o his_o care_n and_o fidelity_n and_o he_o undertake_v to_o manage_v it_o so_o that_o no_o kind_n of_o danger_n can_v arise_v out_o of_o it_o at_o this_o time_n the_o cardinal_n have_v finish_v his_o foundation_n at_o oxford_n and_o ipswich_n finish_v and_o find_v they_o be_v very_o acceptable_a both_o to_o the_o king_n and_o to_o the_o clergy_n resolve_v to_o go_v on_o and_o suppress_v more_o monastery_n and_o erect_v new_a bishopric_n turn_v some_o abbey_n to_o cathedral_n this_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o consistory_n 30._o and_o grant_v as_o appear_v by_o a_o dispatch_n of_o cassali_n he_o also_o speak_v to_o the_o pope_n about_o a_o general_a visitation_n of_o all_o monastery_n and_o on_o the_o four_o of_o november_n the_o bull_n for_o suppress_v some_o be_v expect_v a_o copy_n whereof_o be_v yet_o extant_a but_o write_v in_o such_o a_o hand_n that_o i_o can_v not_o read_v three_o word_n together_o in_o any_o place_n of_o it_o and_o though_o i_o try_v other_o that_o be_v good_a at_o read_v all_o hand_n yet_o they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o but_o i_o find_v by_o the_o dispatch_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v it_o with_o some_o aversion_n and_o when_o gardiner_n tell_v he_o plain_o suppress_v it_o be_v necessary_a and_o it_o must_v be_v do_v he_o pause_v a_o little_a and_o seem_v unwilling_a to_o give_v any_o further_a offence_n to_o religious_a order_n but_o since_o he_o find_v it_o so_o uneasy_a to_o gratify_v the_o king_n in_o so_o great_a a_o point_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o divorce_n he_o judge_v it_o the_o more_o necessary_a to_o mollify_v he_o by_o a_o compliance_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n so_o there_o be_v a_o power_n give_v to_o the_o two_o legate_n to_o examine_v the_o state_n of_o the_o monastery_n and_o to_o suppress_v such_o as_o they_o think_v fit_a and_o convert_v they_o into_o bishopric_n and_o cathedral_n while_o matter_n go_v thus_o between_o rome_n and_o england_n the_o queen_n be_v as_o active_a as_o she_o can_v be_v to_o engage_v she_o two_o nephew_n the_o emperor_n and_o his_o brother_n to_o appear_v for_o she_o suit_n she_o complain_v to_o they_o much_o of_o the_o king_n but_o more_o of_o the_o cardinal_n she_o also_o give_v they_o notice_n of_o all_o the_o exception_n that_o be_v make_v to_o the_o bull_n and_o desire_v both_o their_o advice_n and_o assistance_n they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o perplex_v the_o king_n affair_n advise_v she_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o yield_v nor_o to_o be_v induce_v to_o enter_v into_o a_o religious_a life_n and_o give_v her_o assurance_n that_o by_o their_o interest_n at_o rome_n they_o will_v support_v she_o and_o maintain_v her_o daughter_n title_n if_o it_o go_v to_o extremity_n and_o as_o they_o employ_v all_o their_o agent_n at_o rome_n to_o serve_v she_o concern_v so_o they_o consult_v with_o the_o canonist_n about_o the_o force_n of_o the_o exception_n to_o the_o bull._n the_o issue_n of_o which_o be_v that_o a_o breve_fw-la be_v find_v out_o or_o forge_v that_o supply_v some_o of_o the_o most_o material_a defect_n in_o the_o bull._n for_o whereas_o in_o the_o bull_n the_o preamble_n bear_v that_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n have_v desire_v the_o pope_n dispensation_n to_o marry_v that_o the_o peace_n may_v continue_v between_o the_o two_o crown_n without_o any_o other_o cause_n give_v in_o the_o preamble_n of_o this_o breve_fw-la 15_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o their_o desire_n to_o marry_v because_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o the_o peace_n will_v be_v continue_v between_o the_o two_o crown_n and_o for_o that_o and_o divers_a other_o reason_n they_o ask_v the_o dispensation_n which_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o breve_fw-la be_v grant_v bear_v date_n the_o 26_o of_o december_n 1503._o upon_o this_o they_o pretend_v that_o the_o dispensation_n be_v grant_v upon_o good_a reason_n since_o by_o this_o petition_n it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v fear_n of_o a_o breach_n between_o the_o crown_n and_o that_o there_o be_v also_o other_o reason_n make_v use_v of_o though_o they_o be_v not_o name_v but_o there_o be_v one_o fatal_a thing_n in_o it_o in_o the_o bull_n it_o be_v only_o say_v that_o the_o queen_n petition_n bear_v that_o perhaps_o she_o have_v consummate_v her_o marriage_n with_o prince_n arthur_n by_o the_o
the_o more_o the_o matter_n be_v such_o that_o by_o the_o canon-law_n it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v for_o to_o grant_v a_o avocation_n of_o a_o cause_n upon_o good_a reason_n from_o the_o delegated_a to_o the_o supreme_a court_n be_v a_o thing_n which_o by_o the_o course_n of_o law_n be_v very_o usual_a and_o it_o be_v no_o less_o apparent_a that_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o queen_n appeal_n be_v just_a and_o good_a emperor_n but_o the_o secret_a and_o most_o convince_a motive_n that_o wrought_v more_o on_o the_o pope_n than_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v that_o the_o treaty_n between_o he_o and_o the_o emperor_n be_v now_o concert_v therefore_o this_o be_v to_o be_v publish_v very_o speedy_o the_o pope_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o avocate_v the_o matter_n to_o rome_n before_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o peace_n lest_o if_o he_o do_v it_o after_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v that_o it_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o secret_a article_n of_o the_o treaty_n which_o will_v have_v cast_v a_o foul_a blot_n upon_o he_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n he_o be_v not_o a_o little_a perplex_a with_o the_o fear_n he_o have_v of_o lose_v the_o king_n of_o england_n he_o know_v he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o a_o high_a spirit_n and_o will_v resent_v what_o he_o do_v severe_o and_o the_o cardinal_n now_o again_o order_v dr._n bennet_n in_o his_o name_n and_o as_o with_o tear_n in_o his_o eye_n 29_o lie_v at_o the_o pope_n foot_n to_o assure_v he_o that_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v certain_o lose_v if_o the_o cause_n be_v avocate_v therefore_o he_o beseech_v he_o to_o leave_v it_o still_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o assure_v he_o that_o for_o himself_o he_o shall_v rather_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n joint_a by_o joint_n than_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o that_o matter_n contrary_a to_o his_o conscience_n or_o to_o justice_n perplexity_n these_o thing_n have_v be_v oft_o say_v and_o the_o pope_n do_v apprehend_v that_o ill_a effect_n will_v follow_v for_o if_o the_o king_n fall_v from_o his_o obedience_n to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v no_o doubt_n all_o the_o lutheran_n prince_n who_o be_v already_o bandy_n against_o the_o emperor_n will_v join_v themselves_o with_o he_o and_o the_o interest_n of_o france_n will_v most_o certain_o engage_v that_o king_n also_o into_o the_o union_n which_o will_v distract_v the_o church_n give_v encouragement_n to_o heresy_n and_o end_n in_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o the_o popedom_n but_o in_o all_o this_o the_o crafty_a pope_n comfort_v himself_o that_o many_o time_n threaten_n be_v not_o intend_v to_o be_v make_v good_a but_o be_v use_v to_o terrify_v and_o that_o the_o king_n who_o have_v write_v for_o the_o faith_n against_o luther_n and_o have_v be_v so_o ill_o use_v by_o he_o will_v never_o do_v a_o thing_n that_o will_v sound_v so_o ill_o as_o because_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v what_o he_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o therefore_o to_o turn_v heretic_n he_o also_o resolve_v to_o caress_n the_o french_a king_n much_o and_o be_v in_o hope_n of_o make_v peace_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o he_o but_o that_o which_o go_v near_a the_o pope_n heart_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v the_o set_n up_o of_o his_o family_n at_o florence_n and_o the_o emperor_n have_v give_v he_o assurance_n of_o that_o it_o weigh_v down_o all_o other_o consideration_n therefore_o he_o resolve_v he_o will_v please_v the_o emperor_n but_o do_v all_o he_o can_v not_o to_o lose_v the_o king_n so_o on_o the_o 9th_o of_o july_n he_o send_v for_o the_o king_n ambassador_n and_o tell_v they_o the_o process_n be_v now_o so_o far_o set_v on_o in_o england_n and_o the_o avocation_n so_o earnest_o press_v that_o he_o can_v deny_v it_o no_o long_o for_o all_o the_o lawyer_n in_o rome_n have_v tell_v he_o the_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v deny_v in_o the_o common_a course_n of_o justice_n upon_o this_o the_o ambassador_n tell_v he_o what_o they_o have_v in_o commission_n to_o say_v against_o it_o both_o from_o the_o king_n and_o the_o cardinal_n and_o press_v it_o with_o great_a vehemence_n so_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o many_o sigh_n and_o tear_n show_v how_o deep_a a_o impression_n that_o which_o they_o say_v make_v upon_o he_o he_o wish_v himself_o dead_a that_o he_o may_v be_v deliver_v out_o of_o that_o martyrdom_n and_o add_v these_o word_n which_o because_o of_o their_o savour_v so_o much_o of_o a_o apostolical_a spirit_n i_o set_v down_o woe_n be_v i_o no_o body_n apprehend_v all_o those_o evil_n better_a than_o i_o do_v but_o i_o be_o so_o between_o the_o hammer_n and_o the_o forge_n that_o when_o i_o will_v comply_v with_o the_o king_n desire_n the_o whole_a storm_n than_o must_v fall_v on_o my_o head_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o on_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n they_o do_v object_v the_o many_o promise_n he_o have_v make_v they_o both_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n and_o under_o his_o hand_n he_o answer_v he_o desire_v to_o do_v more_o for_o the_o king_n than_o he_o have_v promise_v but_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o refuse_v what_o the_o emperor_n now_o demand_v who_o force_n do_v so_o surround_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o only_o force_v he_o to_o grant_v he_o justice_n but_o can_v dispose_v of_o he_o and_o all_o his_o concern_v at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o ambassador_n see_v the_o pope_n be_v resolve_v to_o grant_v the_o avocation_n press_v against_o it_o no_o further_o but_o study_v to_o put_v it_o off_o for_o some_o time_n and_o therefore_o propose_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v himself_n write_v about_o it_o to_o the_o king_n and_o not_o grant_v it_o till_o he_o receive_v his_o answer_n of_o all_o this_o they_o give_v advertisement_n to_o the_o king_n and_o write_v to_o he_o that_o he_o must_v either_o drive_v the_o matter_n to_o a_o sentence_n in_o great_a haste_n or_o to_o prevent_v the_o affront_n of_o a_o advocation_n suspend_v the_o process_n for_o some_o time_n they_o also_o advise_v the_o search_a all_o the_o packet_n that_o go_v or_o come_v by_o the_o way_n of_o flanders_n and_o to_o keep_v up_o all_o campegio_n letter_n and_o to_o take_v care_n that_o no_o bull_n may_v come_v to_o england_n for_o they_o do_v much_o apprehend_v that_o the_o avocation_n will_v be_v grant_v within_o very_a few_o day_n 26._o their_o next_o dispatch_n bear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v send_v for_o they_o to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o he_o have_v sign_v the_o avocation_n the_o day_n before_o grant_v but_o they_o understand_v another_o way_n that_o the_o treaty_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o he_o be_v finish_v and_o the_o peace_n be_v to_o be_v proclaim_v on_o the_o 18_o of_o july_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o only_o fear_v the_o emperor_n more_o than_o all_o other_o prince_n but_o that_o he_o also_o trust_v he_o more_o now_o on_o the_o 19_o of_o july_n the_o pope_n send_v a_o messenger_n with_o the_o avocation_n to_o england_n 30_o with_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o cardinal_n to_o the_o king_n he_o write_v afterward_o all_o this_o while_n campegio_n as_o he_o have_v order_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o draw_v out_o the_o matter_n by_o delay_n legate_n so_o do_v it_o very_o dextrous_o and_o in_o this_o he_o pretend_v a_o fair_a excuse_n that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v for_o the_o king_n honour_n to_o precipitate_v the_o matter_n too_o much_o lest_o great_a advantage_n may_v be_v take_v from_o that_o by_o the_o queen_n party_n that_o therefore_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o proceed_v slow_o that_o the_o world_n may_v see_v with_o what_o moderation_n as_o well_o as_o justice_n the_o matter_n be_v handle_v from_o the_o 25_o of_o june_n the_o court_n adjourn_v to_o the_o 28_o order_v a_o second_o citation_n for_o the_o queen_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o contumacy_n and_o of_o their_o proceed_n to_o examine_v witness_n and_o on_o the_o 28_o they_o declare_v the_o queen_n contumacious_a the_o second_o time_n and_o examine_v several_a witness_n upon_o the_o article_n and_o adjourn_v to_o the_o 5_o of_o july_n on_o that_o day_n the_o bull_n and_o breve_fw-la be_v read_v in_o court_n and_o the_o king_n council_n argue_v long_o against_o the_o validity_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o upon_o the_o ground_n that_o have_v be_v already_o mention_v in_o which_o campegio_n be_v much_o disgu_v to_o hear_v they_o argue_v against_o the_o pope_n power_n of_o grant_v such_o a_o dispensation_n in_o a_o matter_n that_o be_v against_o a_o divine_a precept_n allege_v that_o his_o power_n do_v not_o exend_v so_o far_o this_o the_o legate_n overrule_v and_o say_v that_o that_o be_v too_o high_a a_o point_n for_o they_o to_o judge_n in_o or_o so_o much_o as_o to_o hear_v argue_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v the_o only_a
proper_a judge_n in_o that_o and_o it_o be_v odds_o but_o he_o will_v judge_v favourable_o for_o himself_o the_o court_n adjourn_v to_o the_o 12_o and_o from_o that_o to_o the_o 14_o on_o these_o day_n the_o deposition_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o witness_n be_v take_v and_o some_o that_o be_v ancient_a person_n be_v examine_v by_o a_o commission_n from_o the_o legate_n and_o all_o the_o deposition_n be_v publish_v on_o the_o 17_o other_o instrument_n relate_v to_o the_o process_n be_v also_o read_v and_o verify_v in_o court_n on_o the_o 21th_o the_o court_n sa●e_v to_o conclude_v the_o matter_n as_o be_v expect_v and_o the_o instrument_n that_o the_o king_n have_v sign_v when_o he_o come_v of_o age_n protest_v that_o he_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o the_o contract_n make_v when_o he_o be_v under_o age_n be_v then_o read_v and_o verify_v upon_o which_o the_o king_n council_n of_o who_o gardiner_n be_v the_o chief_a close_v their_o evidence_n and_o sum_v up_o all_o that_o have_v be_v bring_v and_o in_o the_o king_n name_n desire_a sentence_n may_v be_v give_v sentence_n but_o campegio_n pretend_v that_o it_o be_v fit_v some_o interval_n shall_v be_v between_o that_o and_o the_o sentence_n put_v it_o off_o till_o the_o 23th_o be_v friday_n and_o in_o the_o whole_a process_n he_o preside_v both_o be_v the_o ancient_a cardinal_n and_o chief_o to_o show_v great_a equity_n since_o exception_n may_v have_v be_v take_v if_o the_o other_o have_v appear_v much_o in_o it_o so_o that_o he_o only_o sit_v by_o he_o for_o form_n but_o all_o the_o order_n of_o the_o court_n be_v still_o direct_v by_o campegio_n on_o friday_n there_o be_v a_o great_a appearance_n and_o a_o general_a expectation_n but_o by_o a_o strange_a surprise_n campegio_n adjourn_v the_o court_n to_o the_o one_a of_o october_n court._n for_o which_o he_o pretend_v that_o they_o sit_v there_o as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o consistory_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o must_v follow_v the_o rule_n of_o that_o court_n which_o from_o that_o time_n till_o october_n be_v in_o a_o vacation_n and_o hear_v no_o cause_n and_o this_o he_o aver_v to_o be_v true_a on_o the_o word_n of_o a_o true_a prelate_n the_o king_n be_v in_o a_o chamber_n very_o near_o where_o he_o hear_v what_o pass_v and_o be_v inexpressible_o surprise_v at_o it_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n and_o suffolk_n be_v in_o court_n and_o complain_v much_o of_o this_o delay_n and_o press_v the_o legate_n to_o give_v sentence_n campegio_fw-la answer_v that_o what_o they_o may_v then_o pronounce_v will_v be_v of_o no_o force_n as_o be_v in_o vacation-time_n but_o give_v great_a hope_n of_o a_o favourable_a sentence_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o october_n upon_o which_o the_o lord_n speak_v very_o high_a offence_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n with_o great_a commotion_n swear_v by_o the_o mass_n that_o he_o see_v it_o be_v true_a which_o have_v be_v common_o say_v that_o never_o cardinal_n yet_o do_v good_a in_o england_n and_o so_o all_o the_o temporal_a lord_n go_v away_o in_o a_o fury_n leave_v the_o legate_n wolsey_z especial_o in_o no_o small_a perplexity_n wolsey_z know_v it_o will_v be_v suspect_v that_o he_o understand_v this_o beforehand_o and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o he_o either_o to_o say_v he_o do_v not_o know_v or_o can_v not_o help_v it_o all_o apology_n be_v ill_o hear_v by_o a_o enrage_a prince_n campegio_fw-la have_v not_o much_o to_o lose_v in_o england_n but_o his_o bishopric_n of_o salisbury_n and_o the_o reward_n he_o expect_v from_o the_o king_n which_o he_o know_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n will_v plentiful_o make_v up_o to_o he_o but_o his_o colleague_n be_v in_o a_o worse_a condition_n he_o have_v much_o to_o fear_v because_o he_o have_v much_o to_o lose_v for_o as_o the_o king_n have_v severe_o chide_v he_o for_o the_o delay_n of_o the_o business_n so_o he_o be_v now_o to_o expect_v a_o heavy_a storm_n from_o he_o danger_n and_o after_o so_o long_a a_o administration_n of_o affair_n by_o so_o insolent_a a_o favourite_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o as_o many_o of_o his_o enemy_n be_v join_v against_o he_o so_o matter_n must_v needs_o be_v find_v to_o work_v his_o ruin_n with_o a_o prince_n that_o be_v alienate_v from_o he_o therefore_o he_o be_v under_o all_o the_o disorder_n which_o a_o fear_n that_o be_v heighten_v by_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n can_v produce_v but_o the_o king_n govern_v himself_o upon_o this_o occasion_n with_o more_o temper_n than_o can_v have_v be_v expect_v from_o a_o man_n of_o his_o humour_n therefore_o as_o he_o make_v no_o great_a show_n of_o disturbance_n so_o to_o divert_v his_o uneasy_a thought_n he_o go_v his_o progress_n soon_o after_o he_o receive_v his_o agent_n letter_n from_o rome_n and_o make_v gardiner_n who_o be_v then_o secretary_n of_o state_n write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n to_o put_v campegio_n to_o his_o oath_n whether_o he_o have_v reveal_v the_o king_n secret_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o not_o and_o if_o he_o swear_v he_o have_v not_o do_v it_o to_o make_v he_o swear_v he_o shall_v never_o do_v it_o a_o little_a after_o that_o the_o messenger_z come_v from_o rome_n with_o a_o breve_fw-la to_o the_o legate_n require_v they_o to_o proceed_v no_o further_o and_o with_o a_o avocation_n of_o the_o cause_n to_o rome_n together_o with_o letter_n citatory_n to_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n to_o appear_v there_o in_o person_n 4._o or_o by_o their_o proxy_n of_o which_o when_o the_o king_n be_v advertise_v gardiner_n write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n by_o his_o order_n that_o the_o king_n will_v not_o have_v the_o letter_n citatory_n execute_v or_o the_o commission_n discharge_v by_o virtue_n of_o they_o but_o that_o upon_o the_o pope_n breve_fw-la to_o they_o they_o shall_v declare_v their_o commission_n void_a for_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v a_o thing_n so_o much_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o crown_n as_o a_o citation_n be_v make_v to_o appear_v in_o another_o court_n nor_o will_v he_o let_v his_o subject_n imagine_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n this_o be_v the_o first_o step_n that_o he_o make_v for_o the_o lessen_v of_o the_o pope_n power_n upon_o which_o the_o two_o cardinal_n for_o they_o be_v legate_n no_o long_o go_v to_o the_o king_n at_o grafton_n it_o be_v general_o expect_v that_o wolsey_n shall_v have_v be_v disgrace_v then_o for_o not_o only_o the_o king_n be_v offend_v with_o he_o but_o he_o receive_v new_a information_n of_o his_o have_v juggle_v in_o the_o business_n and_o that_o he_o secret_o advise_v the_o pope_n to_o do_v what_o be_v do_v this_o be_v set_v about_o by_o some_o of_o the_o queen_n agent_n as_o if_o there_o be_v certain_a knowledge_n have_v of_o it_o at_o rome_n and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o some_o letter_n of_o he_o to_o the_o pope_n be_v by_o a_o trick_n find_v and_o bring_v over_o to_o england_n the_o emperor_n look_v on_o the_o cardinal_n as_o his_o inveterate_a enemy_n and_o design_v to_o ruin_v he_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a nor_o be_v it_o hard_o to_o persuade_v the_o queen_n to_o concur_v with_o he_o to_o pull_v he_o down_o but_o all_o this_o seem_v a_o artifice_n of_o they_o only_a to_o destroy_v he_o for_o the_o earnestness_n the_o cardinal_n express_v in_o this_o matter_n be_v such_o that_o either_o he_o be_v sincere_a in_o it_o or_o he_o be_v the_o best_a at_o dissemble_a that_o ever_o be_v but_o these_o suggestion_n be_v easy_o infuse_v in_o the_o king_n angry_a mind_n so_o strange_o be_v man_n turn_v by_o their_o affection_n that_o sometime_o they_o will_v believe_v nothing_o and_o at_o other_o time_n they_o believe_v every_o thing_n yet_o when_o the_o cardinal_n with_o his_o colleague_n come_v to_o court_n they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o king_n with_o very_o hearty_a expression_n of_o kindness_n and_o wolsey_n be_v often_o in_o private_a with_o he_o sometime_o in_o presence_n of_o the_o council_n and_o sometime_o alone_o once_o he_o be_v many_o hour_n with_o the_o king_n alone_o and_o when_o they_o take_v leave_v he_o send_v they_o away_o very_o oblige_o but_o that_o which_o give_v cardinal_n wolsey_n the_o most_o assurance_n cromwell_n be_v that_o all_o those_o who_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o king_n privacy_n do_v carry_v themselves_o towards_o he_o as_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v both_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n sir_n thomas_n boleyn_n then_o make_v vis-count_a of_o rochfort_n sir_n brian_n tuke_n and_o gardiner_n conclude_v that_o from_o the_o motion_n of_o such_o weathercock_n the_o air_n of_o the_o prince_n affection_n be_v best_o gather_v court_n anne_n boleyn_n be_v now_o bring_v to_o the_o court_n again_o out_o of_o which_o she_o have_v be_v dismiss_v for_o some_o
not_o then_o just_a cause_n to_o distrust_v all_o that_o come_v from_o he_o when_o at_o one_o time_n he_o condemn_v what_o he_o have_v allow_v at_o another_o so_o that_o the_o king_n see_v clear_o he_o do_v not_o consider_v the_o ease_n of_o his_o conscience_n but_o other_o worldly_a respect_n that_o have_v put_v he_o on_o consult_v so_o many_o learned_a man_n who_o judgement_n differ_v much_o from_o those_o few_o that_o be_v about_o the_o pope_n who_o think_v the_o prohibition_n of_o such_o marriage_n be_v only_o positive_a and_o may_v be_v dispense_v with_o by_o the_o pope_n whereas_o all_o other_o learned_a man_n think_v the_o law_n be_v moral_a and_o indispensable_a he_o perceive_v the_o apostolic_a see_v be_v destitute_a of_o that_o learning_n by_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v direct_v and_o the_o pope_n have_v oft_o profess_v his_o own_o ignorance_n and_o that_o he_o speak_v by_o other_o man_n mouth_n but_o many_o university_n in_o england_n france_n and_o italy_n have_v declare_v the_o marriage_n unlawful_a and_o the_o dispensation_n null_a none_o honour_v the_o apostolic_a see_v more_o than_o he_o have_v do_v and_o therefore_o he_o be_v sorry_a to_o write_v such_o thing_n if_o he_o can_v have_v be_v silent_a if_o he_o shall_v obey_v the_o pope_n letter_n he_o will_v offend_v god_n and_o his_o own_o conscience_n and_o give_v scandal_n to_o those_o who_o condemn_v his_o marriage_n he_o do_v not_o willing_o dissent_v from_o he_o without_o a_o very_a urgent_a cause_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o despise_v the_o apostolic_a see_n therefore_o he_o desire_v the_o pope_n will_v forgive_v the_o freedom_n that_o he_o use_v since_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n that_o draw_v it_o from_o he_o and_o he_o add_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o impugn_v the_o pope_n authority_n further_o except_o he_o compel_v he_o and_o what_o he_o do_v be_v only_o to_o bring_v it_o within_o its_o first_o and_o ancient_a limit_n to_o which_o it_o be_v better_a to_o reduce_v it_o than_o to_o let_v it_o always_o run_v on_o headlong_o and_o do_v amiss_o therefore_o he_o desire_v the_o pope_n will_v conform_v himself_o to_o the_o opinion_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n and_o do_v his_o duty_n and_o office_n the_o letter_n end_v with_o a_o credence_n to_o the_o ambassador_n the_o pope_n see_v his_o authority_n be_v decline_v in_o england_n resolve_v now_o to_o do_v all_o he_o can_v to_o recover_v it_o either_o by_o force_n or_o treaty_n and_o so_o order_v a_o citation_n to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o king_n to_o appear_v in_o person_n or_o by_o proxy_n at_o rome_n to_o answer_v to_o the_o queen_n appeal_n upon_o which_o sir_n edward_n karne_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n with_o a_o new_a character_n of_o excusatour_n his_o instruction_n be_v to_o take_v the_o best_a counsel_n for_o plead_v a_o excuse_n of_o the_o king_n appearance_n at_o rome_n first_o rome_n upon_o the_o ground_n that_o may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o these_o not_o be_v sufficient_a he_o be_v to_o insist_v on_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n doctor_n bonner_n go_v with_o he_o who_o have_v express_v much_o zeal_n in_o the_o king_n cause_n though_o his_o great_a zeal_n be_v for_o preferment_n which_o by_o the_o most_o servile_a way_n he_o always_o court_v he_o be_v a_o forward_a bold_a man_n and_o since_o there_o be_v many_o threaten_n to_o be_v use_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n he_o be_v think_v fit_a for_o the_o employment_n but_o be_v neither_o learned_a nor_o discreet_a 13._o they_o come_v to_o rome_n in_o march_n where_o they_o find_v great_a heat_n in_o the_o consistory_n about_o the_o king_n business_n the_o imperialist_n press_v the_o pope_n to_o proceed_v but_o all_o the_o wise_a and_o indifferent_a cardinal_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n and_o when_o they_o understand_v what_o a_o act_n be_v pass_v about_o annates_fw-la they_o see_v clear_o that_o the_o parliament_n be_v resolve_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o king_n in_o every_o thing_n he_o intend_v to_o do_v against_o their_o interest_n the_o pope_n expostulate_v with_o the_o ambassador_n about_o it_o but_o they_o tell_v he_o the_o act_n be_v still_o in_o the_o king_n power_n and_o except_o he_o provoke_v he_o he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n the_o ambassador_n find_v the_o cardinal_n of_o ravenna_n of_o so_o great_a reputation_n both_o for_o learning_n and_o virtue_n that_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o that_o kind_a his_o opinion_n be_v hear_v as_o a_o oracle_n and_o give_v law_n to_o the_o whole_a consistory_n they_o resolve_v to_o gain_v he_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a and_o doctor_n bennet_n make_v a_o secret_a address_n to_o he_o and_o offer_v he_o what_o bishopric_n either_o in_o france_n or_o england_n he_o will_v desire_v if_o he_o will_v bring_v the_o king_n matter_n to_o a_o good_a issue_n he_o be_v at_o first_o very_o rich_a at_o length_n he_o say_v he_o have_v be_v oft_o deceive_v by_o many_o prince_n who_o have_v make_v he_o great_a promise_n but_o when_o their_o business_n be_v end_v never_o think_v of_o perform_v they_o therefore_o he_o will_v be_v sure_a and_o so_o drive_v a_o bargain_n and_o get_v under_o doctor_n bennet_n hand_n a_o promise_n of_o which_o a_o copy_n be_v send_v to_o the_o king_n write_v by_o bennet_n himself_o will_v be_v find_v at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o volume_n bear_v that_o he_o have_v power_n from_o the_o king_n for_o that_o effect_n 43._o date_v the_o 29_o of_o december_n last_o do_v promise_v the_o cardinal_n for_o his_o help_n in_o the_o king_n affair_n monastery_n or_o other_o benefice_n in_o france_n to_o the_o value_n of_o 6000_o ducat_n a_o year_n and_o the_o first_o bishopric_n that_o fall_v vacant_a in_o england_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o ely_n that_o when_o ever_o that_o see_v be_v vacant_a upon_o his_o resign_v the_o other_o he_o shall_v be_v provide_v with_o the_o bishopric_n of_o ely_n date_v at_o rome_n the_o seven_o of_o february_n 1532._o this_o i_o set_v down_o as_o one_o of_o the_o most_o considerable_a argument_n that_o can_v be_v use_v to_o satisfy_v the_o cardinal_n conscience_n about_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o king_n cause_n this_o cardinal_n be_v the_o fit_a to_o work_v secret_o for_o the_o king_n for_o he_o have_v appear_v visible_a against_o he_o i_o find_v also_o by_o other_o letter_n that_o both_o the_o cardinal_n of_o an●ona_n and_o monte_fw-la afterward_o pope_n julius_n the_o 3d_o be_v prevail_v with_o by_o argument_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n though_o i_o can_v find_v cut_v what_o the_o bargain_n be_v providellus_n that_o be_v account_v the_o great_a canonist_n in_o italy_n be_v bring_v from_o bononia_n and_o entertain_v by_o the_o ambassador_n to_o give_v counsel_n in_o the_o king_n cause_n and_o to_o plead_v his_o excuse_n from_o appear_v at_o rome_n the_o plea_n be_v sum_v up_o in_o 28_o article_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o admit_v they_o to_o be_v examine_v in_o the_o consistory_n appoint_v three_o of_o they_o to_o be_v open_v at_o a_o session_n but_o the_o imperialist_n oppose_v that_o and_o after_o fifteen_o of_o they_o have_v be_v hear_v procure_v a_o new_a order_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v in_o a_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n before_o the_o pope_n 44._o pretend_v that_o a_o consistory_n sit_v but_o once_o a_o week_n and_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o other_o business_n it_o will_v be_v long_o before_o the_o matter_n can_v be_v bring_v to_o any_o issue_n so_o karne_n be_v serve_v with_o a_o new_a order_n to_o appear_v in_o the_o congregation_n the_o 3d._n of_o april_n with_o this_o certification_n that_o if_o he_o appear_v not_o they_o will_v proceed_v upon_o which_o he_o protest_v that_o he_o will_v adhere_v to_o the_o former_a order_n yet_o be_v warn_v the_o second_o time_n he_o go_v first_o and_o protest_v against_o it_o which_o he_o get_v enter_v in_o the_o datary_n this_o be_v consider_v in_o the_o congregation_n they_o renew_v the_o order_n ofhear_v it_o in_o the_o consistory_n on_o the_o 10_o of_o april_n and_o then_o providellus_n open_v three_o conclusion_n two_o of_o they_o relate_v to_o karne_n power_n the_o three_o be_v concern_v the_o safety_n of_o the_o place_n to_o both_o party_n but_o the_o imperialist_n and_o the_o queen_n council_n be_v dissatisfy_v with_o this_o order_n will_v not_o appear_v upon_o which_o karne_v complain_v of_o their_o contumacy_n and_o say_v by_o that_o it_o be_v visible_a they_o be_v distrustful_a of_o their_o cause_n on_o the_o 14_o of_o april_n a_o new_a intimation_n be_v make_v to_o karne_v to_o appear_v on_o the_o 17_o with_o his_o advocate_n to_o open_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o conclusion_n but_o he_o according_a to_o the_o first_o order_n will_v only_o plead_v
sometime_o make_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o sometime_o confirm_v by_o they_o pope_n hadrian_n in_o a_o synod_n decree_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v choose_v the_o pope_n and_o it_o be_v a_o late_a and_o unheard_a of_o thing_n before_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o for_o pope_n to_o pretend_v to_o depose_v prince_n and_o give_v away_o their_o dominion_n this_o they_o compare_v to_o the_o pride_n of_o antichrist_n and_o lucifer_n they_o also_o argue_v from_o reason_n reason_n that_o there_o must_v be_v but_o one_o supreme_a and_o that_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a over_o all_o his_o subject_n clergyman_n must_v be_v include_v for_o they_o be_v still_o subject_n nor_o can_v their_o be_v in_o order_n change_v that_o former_a relation_n found_v upon_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o nation_n no_o more_o than_o wife_n or_o servant_n by_o become_v christian_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n discharge_v from_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o former_a relation_n for_o the_o great_a objection_n from_o those_o office_n that_o be_v peculiar_a to_o their_o function_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o these_o notwithstanding_o the_o king_n may_v well_o be_v supreme_a head_n for_o in_o the_o natural_a body_n there_o be_v many_o vital_a motion_n that_o proceed_v not_o from_o the_o head_n but_o from_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o other_o inward_a part_n and_o vessel_n and_o yet_o the_o head_n be_v still_o the_o chief_a seat_n and_o root_n of_o life_n so_o though_o there_o be_v peculiar_a function_n appropriate_v to_o churchman_n yet_o the_o king_n be_v still_o head_n have_v authority_n over_o they_o and_o a_o power_n to_o direct_v and_o coerce_v they_o in_o these_o england_n from_o that_o they_o proceed_v to_o show_v that_o in_o england_n the_o king_n have_v always_o assume_v a_o supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n 1534._o they_o begin_v with_o the_o most_o ancient_a write_n that_o relate_v to_o the_o christian_a religion_n in_o england_n then_o extant_a pope_n elentherius_fw-la letter_n to_o king_n lucius_n in_o which_o he_o be_v twice_o call_v by_o he_o god_n vicar_n in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o write_v in_o it_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o his_o office_n to_o bring_v his_o subject_n to_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o to_o maintain_v protect_v and_o govern_v they_o in_o it_o many_o law_n be_v cite_v which_o canutus_n ethelred_n edgar_n edmond_n athelstan_n and_o ina_n have_v enact_v concern_v churchman_n many_o more_o law_n since_o the_o conquest_n be_v also_o make_v both_o against_o appeal_n to_o rome_n and_o bishop_n go_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n the_o whole_a business_n of_o the_o article_n of_o clarendon_n and_o the_o contest_v that_o follow_v between_o king_n henry_n the_o second_o and_o thomas_n becket_n be_v also_o open_v and_o though_o a_o bishop_n pastoral_a care_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n yet_o as_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v divide_v bishopric_n as_o they_o please_v so_o they_o also_o convert_v benefice_n from_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o founder_n and_o give_v they_o to_o cloister_n and_o monastery_n as_o king_n edgar_n do_v all_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o clergy_n and_o nobility_n without_o dependence_n on_o rome_n they_o have_v also_o grant_v these_o house_n exemption_n from_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n so_o ina_n exempt_v glastenbury_n and_o offa_n st._n alban_n from_o their_o bishop_n visitation_n and_o this_o continue_a even_o till_o the_o day_n of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n for_o he_o to_o perpetuate_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o victory_n he_o obtain_v over_o harald_n and_o to_o endear_v himself_o to_o the_o clergy_n found_v a_o abbey_n in_o the_o field_n where_o the_o battle_n be_v fight_v and_o call_v it_o battel-abbey_n and_o in_o the_o charter_n he_o grant_v they_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v find_v it_o shall_v be_v also_o free_a and_o quiet_a for_o ever_o from_o all_o subjection_n to_o bishop_n or_o the_o dominion_n of_o any_o other_o person_n as_o christ_n church_n in_o canterbury_n be_v many_o other_o thing_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o king_n alfred_n law_n and_o a_o speech_n of_o king_n edgar_n with_o several_a letter_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o king_n the_o parliament_n and_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n to_o show_v that_o their_o king_n do_v always_o make_v law_n about_o sacred_a matter_n and_o that_o their_o power_n reach_v to_o that_o and_o to_o the_o person_n of_o churchman_n as_o well_o as_o to_o their_o other_o subject_n supremacy_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o they_o plead_v so_o much_o for_o the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o power_n of_o make_v law_n for_o restrain_v and_o coerce_v his_o subject_n it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o vest_v he_o with_o such_o a_o absolute_a power_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v pretend_v to_o for_o they_o thus_o define_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o king_n power_n to_o they_o special_o and_o principal_o order_n it_o pertain_v to_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o religion_n to_o conserve_v and_o maintain_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o such_o as_o be_v true_a preacher_n and_o setter_n forth_o thereof_o and_o to_o abolish_v abuse_n heresy_n and_o idolatry_n and_o to_o punish_v with_o corporal_a pain_n such_o as_o of_o malice_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o same_o and_o final_o to_o oversee_v and_o cause_n that_o the_o say_v bishop_n and_o priest_n do_v execute_v their_o pastoral_a office_n true_o and_o faithful_o and_o special_o in_o these_o point_n which_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v give_v and_o commit_v to_o they_o and_o in_o case_n they_o shall_v be_v negligent_a in_o any_o part_n thereof_o or_o will_v not_o diligent_o execute_v the_o same_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o redouble_v and_o supply_v their_o lack_n and_o if_o they_o obstinate_o withstand_v their_o prince_n kind_a monition_n and_o will_v not_o amend_v their_o fault_n then_o and_o in_o such_o case_n to_o put_v other_o in_o their_o room_n and_o place_n and_o god_n have_v also_o command_v the_o say_v bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o obey_v with_o all_o humbleness_n and_o reverence_n both_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o governor_n and_o all_o their_o law_n not_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v and_o that_o not_o only_a propter_fw-la iram_fw-la but_o also_o propter_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o only_o for_o fear_n of_o punishment_n but_o also_o for_o discharge_v of_o conscience_n thus_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o both_o limit_v obedience_n to_o the_o king_n law_n with_o the_o due_a caution_n of_o their_o not_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o discharge_n of_o the_o pastoral_n office_n commit_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o that_o the_o supremacy_n then_o pretend_v to_o be_v no_o such_o extravagant_a power_n as_o some_o imagine_v upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n power_n in_o england_n have_v no_o good_a foundation_n power_n and_o have_v be_v manage_v with_o as_o much_o tyranny_n as_o it_o have_v begin_v with_o usurpation_n the_o exaction_n of_o their_o court_n be_v everywhere_o heavy_a but_o in_o no_o place_n so_o intolerable_a as_o in_o england_n and_o though_o many_o complaint_n be_v make_v of_o they_o in_o these_o last_o 300_o year_n yet_o they_o get_v no_o ease_n and_o all_o the_o law_n about_o provisor_n be_v still_o defeat_v and_o make_v ineffectual_a therefore_o they_o see_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o moderate_v their_o proceed_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o to_o extirpate_v their_o pretend_a authority_n and_o thenceforth_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n only_a bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o jurisdiction_n about_o it_o define_v by_o the_o ancient_a canon_n and_o for_o the_o king_n to_o reassume_a his_o own_o authority_n and_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o crown_n from_o which_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v never_o formal_o depart_v though_o they_o have_v for_o this_o last_o hundred_o year_n connive_v at_o a_o invasion_n and_o usurpation_n upon_o they_o which_o be_v no_o long_o to_o be_v endure_v these_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o cast_v off_o the_o pope_n power_n that_o have_v be_v for_o two_o or_o three_o year_n study_v it_o and_o inquire_v into_o by_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n in_o england_n and_o have_v be_v debate_v both_o in_o convocation_n and_o parliament_n and_o except_o fisher_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o any_o bishop_n appear_v for_o the_o pope_n power_n and_o for_o the_o abbot_n and_o prior_n as_o they_o be_v general_o very_o ignorant_a so_o what_o the_o cardinal_n have_v do_v in_o suppress_v some_o monastery_n and_o what_o they_o now_o hear_v that_o the_o
court_n have_v a_o eye_n on_o their_o land_n make_v they_o to_o be_v as_o compliant_a as_o can_v be_v but_o fisher_n be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a reputation_n and_o very_o ancient_a so_o that_o much_o pain_n be_v take_v to_o satisfy_v he_o a_o week_n before_o the_o parliament_n sit_v down_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n propose_v to_o he_o that_o he_o and_o any_o five_o doctor_n such_o as_o he_o shall_v choose_v and_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n and_o five_o doctor_n with_o he_o may_v confer_v about_o it_o and_o examine_v the_o authority_n of_o both_o side_n that_o so_o there_o may_v be_v a_o agreement_n among_o they_o by_o which_o the_o scandal_n may_v be_v remove_v which_o otherwise_o will_v be_v take_v from_o their_o jangle_n and_o contest_v among_o themselves_o fisher_n accept_v of_o this_o and_o stokesley_n write_v to_o he_o on_o the_o 8_o of_o january_n that_o he_o be_v ready_a whenever_o the_o other_o please_v and_o desire_v he_o to_o name_n time_n and_o place_n 10._o and_o if_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v the_o matter_n among_o themselves_o he_o move_v to_o refer_v it_o to_o two_o learned_a man_n who_o they_o shall_v choose_v in_o who_o determination_n they_o will_v both_o acquiesce_v how_o far_o this_o overture_n go_v i_o can_v discover_v and_o perhaps_o fisher_n sickness_n hinder_v the_o progress_n of_o it_o but_o now_o on_o the_o 15_o of_o january_n the_o parliament_n sit_v down_o by_o the_o journal_o i_o find_v no_o other_o bishop_n present_v but_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o bishop_n of_o london_n winchester_n lincoln_n bath_n and_o wells_n landaffe_n and_o carlisle_n there_o be_v also_o twelve_o abbot_n present_a but_o upon_o what_o pretence_n the_o rest_n excuse_v their_o attendance_n i_o do_v not_o know_v perhaps_o some_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o submit_v to_o what_o be_v do_v and_o be_v active_a and_o concur_v to_o make_v the_o change_n during_o the_o session_n a_o bishop_n preach_v every_o sunday_n at_o pauls-cross_n and_o declare_v to_o the_o people_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n at_o all_o in_o england_n in_o the_o two_o former_a session_n the_o bishop_n have_v preach_v that_o the_o general_a council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n but_o now_o they_o strike_v a_o note_n high_o this_o be_v do_v to_o let_v the_o people_n see_v what_o justice_n and_o reason_n be_v in_o the_o act_n that_o be_v then_o pass_v to_o which_o i_o now_o turn_v and_o shall_v next_o give_v a_o account_n of_o this_o great_a session_n of_o parliament_n which_o i_o shall_v put_v rather_o in_o the_o natural_a method_n according_a to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o act_n than_o in_o the_o order_n of_o time_n as_o they_o pass_v on_o the_o 9th_o of_o march_n a_o bill_n come_v up_o from_o the_o commons_o for_o discharge_v the_o subject_n of_o all_o dependence_n on_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v read_v the_o first_o time_n in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n the_o 13_o of_o march_n procer_fw-la and_o on_o the_o 14_o be_v read_v the_o second_o time_n and_o commit_v the_o committee_n report_v it_o on_o the_o 19_o by_o which_o it_o appear_v there_o be_v no_o stiff_a nor_o long_a opposition_n and_o he_o that_o be_v like_a to_o make_v it_o be_v both_o obnoxious_a and_o absent_a as_o will_v afterward_o appear_v on_o the_o 19_o it_o be_v read_v the_o three_o time_n and_o on_o the_o 20_o the_o four_o time_n and_o then_o pass_v without_o any_o protestation_n some_o proviso_n be_v add_v to_o it_o by_o the_o lord_n to_o which_o the_o commons_o agree_v and_o so_o it_o be_v make_v ready_a for_o the_o royal_a assent_n in_o the_o preamble_n the_o intolerable_a exaction_n for_o peterpence_n provision_n pension_n and_o bull_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v complain_v of_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o law_n power_n and_o ground_v only_o on_o the_o pope_n power_n of_o dispense_v which_o be_v usurp_v but_o the_o king_n and_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o within_o his_o own_o realm_n have_v only_o power_n to_o consider_v how_o any_o of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v dispense_v with_o or_o abrogate_a and_o since_o the_o king_n be_v acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n journal_n in_o their_o convocation_n therefore_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o all_o payment_n make_v to_o the_o apostolic_a chamber_n and_o all_o provision_n bull_n or_o dispensation_n shall_v from_o thenceforth_o cease_v but_o that_o all_o dispensation_n or_o licence_n for_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o only_o to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n shall_v be_v grant_v within_o the_o kingdom_n by_o and_o under_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o two_o arch-bishop_n in_o their_o several_a province_n who_o shall_v not_o presume_v to_o grant_v any_o contrary_n to_o the_o law_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o shall_v only_o grant_v such_o licence_n as_o have_v be_v former_o in_o use_n to_o be_v grant_v but_o give_v no_o licence_n for_o any_o new_a thing_n till_o it_o be_v first_o examine_v by_o the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n whether_o such_o thing_n may_v be_v dispense_v with_o and_o that_o all_o dispensation_n which_o be_v former_o tax_v at_o or_o above_o 4_o l._n shall_v be_v also_o confirm_v under_o the_o great-seal_n then_o many_o clause_n follow_v about_o the_o rate_n of_o licence_n and_o the_o way_n of_o procure_v they_o it_o be_v also_o declare_v that_o they_o do_v not_o hereby_o intend_v to_o vary_v from_o christ_n church_n about_o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n of_o christendom_n or_o in_o any_o other_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n confirm_v withal_o the_o exemption_n of_o monastery_n former_o grant_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n exempt_n they_o still_o from_o the_o arch-bishop_n visitation_n declare_v that_o such_o abbey_n who_o election_n be_v former_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v now_o confirm_v by_o the_o king_n who_o likewise_o shall_v give_v commission_n under_o his_o great-seal_n for_o visit_v they_o provide_v also_o that_o licence_n and_o other_o writ_n obtain_v from_o rome_n before_o the_o 12_o of_o march_n in_o that_o year_n shall_v be_v valid_a and_o in_o force_n except_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n give_v also_o to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n power_n to_o order_n and_o reform_v all_o indulgence_n and_o privilege_n or_o the_o abuse_n of_o they_o which_o have_v be_v grant_v by_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n the_o offender_n against_o this_o act_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v according_a to_o the_o statute_n of_o provisor_n and_o praemunire_n this_o act_n as_o it_o give_v great_a ease_n to_o the_o subject_a act._n so_o it_o cut_v off_o that_o base_a trade_n of_o indulgence_n about_o divine_a law_n which_o have_v be_v so_o gainful_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o be_v of_o late_a fatal_a to_o it_o all_o in_o the_o religious_a house_n see_v their_o privilege_n now_o strike_v at_o since_o they_o be_v to_o be_v reform_v as_o the_o king_n see_v cause_n which_o put_v they_o in_o no_o small_a confusion_n those_o that_o favour_v the_o reformation_n rejoice_v at_o this_o act_n not_o only_o because_o the_o pope_n power_n be_v root_v out_o but_o because_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o be_v adhere_v to_o be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n declare_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o all_o their_o fear_n be_v now_o much_o qualify_v since_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v the_o standard_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n on_o the_o same_o day_n that_o this_o bill_n pass_v in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n another_o bill_n be_v read_v for_o confirm_v the_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n in_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o king_n present_a marriage_n with_o queen_n anne_n it_o be_v read_v the_o second_o time_n on_o the_o 21_o of_o march_n and_o commit_v it_o be_v report_v on_o the_o 23th_o and_o read_v the_o three_o time_n and_o pass_v and_o send_v down_o to_o the_o commons_o who_o send_v it_o back_o again_o to_o they_o on_o the_o 26_o so_o speedy_o do_v this_o bill_n go_v through_o both_o house_n without_o any_o opposition_n the_o preamble_n of_o it_o be_v journal_n the_o distraction_n that_o have_v be_v in_o england_n about_o the_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n which_o have_v occasion_v the_o effusion_n of_o much_o blood_n with_o many_o other_o mischief_n all_o which_o flow_v from_o the_o want_n of_o a_o clear_a decision_n of_o the_o true_a title_n from_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v usurp_v a_o power_n of_o invest_v such_o as_o please_v they_o in_o other_o prince_n kingdom_n and_o prince_n have_v often_o maintain_v such_o donation_n for_o their_o other_o end_n therefore_o to_o avoid_v the_o like_a
relic_n without_o number_n be_v everywhere_o discover_v and_o most_o wonderful_a relation_n of_o the_o martyrdom_n and_o other_o miracle_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v make_v and_o read_v in_o all_o place_n to_o the_o people_n and_o new_a improvement_n be_v daily_o make_v in_o a_o trade_n that_o through_o the_o craft_n of_o the_o monk_n and_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o people_n bring_v in_o great_a advantage_n and_o though_o there_o be_v enough_o get_v to_o enrich_v they_o all_o yet_o there_o be_v strange_a rival_v not_o only_o among_o the_o several_a order_n but_o the_o house_n of_o the_o same_o order_n the_o monk_n especial_o of_o glassenbury_n st._n alban_n and_o st._n edmundsbury_n vie_v one_o with_o another_o who_o can_v tell_v the_o most_o extravagant_a story_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o house_n and_o of_o the_o relic_n in_o it_o the_o monk_n in_o these_o house_n abound_v in_o wealth_n and_o live_v at_o ●ase_n and_o in_o idleness_n corrupt_v do_v so_o degenerate_a that_o from_o the_o twelve_o century_n downward_o their_o reputation_n abate_v much_o and_o the_o privilege_n of_o sanctuary_n be_v a_o general_a grievance_n and_o oft_o complain_v of_o in_o parliament_n for_o they_o receive_v all_o that_o flee_v to_o they_o which_o put_v a_o great_a stop_n to_o justice_n and_o do_v encourage_v the_o most_o criminal_a offender_n they_o become_v lewd_a and_o dissolute_a and_o so_o impudent_a in_o it_o that_o some_o of_o their_o farm_n be_v let_v for_o bring_v in_o a_o yearly_a tribute_n to_o their_o lust_n nor_o do_v they_o keep_v hospitality_n and_o relieve_v the_o poor_a but_o rather_o encourage_v vagabond_n and_o beggar_n against_o who_o law_n be_v make_v both_o in_o edward_n the_o 3d_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o and_o this_o king_n reign_n but_o from_o the_o twelve_o century_n credit_n the_o order_n of_o beg_a friar_n be_v set_v up_o and_o they_o by_o the_o appearance_n of_o severity_n and_o mortification_n gain_v great_a esteem_n at_o first_o they_o will_v have_v nothing_o no_o real_a estate_n but_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o their_o house_n stand_v but_o afterward_o distinction_n be_v find_v for_o satisfy_v their_o conscience_n in_o large_a possession_n they_o be_v not_o so_o idle_a and_o lazy_a as_o the_o monk_n but_o go_v about_o and_o preach_v and_o hear_v confession_n and_o carry_v about_o indulgence_n with_o many_o other_o pretty_a little_a thing_n del_n rosary_n and_o pebble_n which_o they_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v have_v great_a virtue_n in_o they_o and_o they_o have_v the_o esteem_n of_o the_o people_n whole_o engross_v to_o themselves_o they_o be_v also_o more_o formidable_a to_o prince_n than_o the_o monk_n because_o they_o be_v poor_a and_o by_o consequence_n more_o hardy_a and_o bold_a there_o be_v also_o a_o firm_a union_n of_o their_o whole_a order_n they_o have_v a_o general_n at_o rome_n and_o be_v divide_v into_o many_o province_n subject_a to_o their_o provincial_n they_o have_v likewise_o the_o schooll-learning_n whole_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o be_v great_a preacher_n so_o that_o many_o thing_n concur_v to_o raise_v their_o esteem_n with_o the_o people_n very_o high_a yet_o great_a complaint_n lay_v against_o they_o for_o they_o go_v more_o abroad_o than_o the_o monk_n do_v and_o be_v believe_v guilty_a of_o corrupt_v family_n the_o scandal_n that_o go_v on_o they_o upon_o their_o relax_v the_o primitive_a strictness_n of_o their_o order_n be_v a_o little_a rectify_v by_o some_o reformation_n of_o these_o order_n but_o that_o last_v not_o long_o for_o they_o become_v liable_a to_o much_o censure_n and_o many_o visitation_n have_v be_v make_v but_o to_o little_a purpose_n this_o concur_v with_o their_o secret_a practice_n against_o the_o king_n both_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o divorce_n and_o supremacy_n make_v he_o more_o willing_a to_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o these_o report_n that_o if_o they_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o such_o scandal_n they_o may_v lose_v their_o credit_n with_o the_o people_n and_o occasion_n be_v minister_v to_o the_o king_n to_o justify_v the_o suppression_n of_o they_o there_o be_v also_o two_o other_o motive_n that_o incline_v the_o king_n to_o this_o counsel_n the_o one_o be_v house_n that_o he_o apprehend_v a_o war_n from_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v then_o the_o only_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v any_o considerable_a force_n at_o sea_n have_v both_o great_a fleet_n in_o the_o indies_n and_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o netherlands_o where_o the_o great_a trade_n of_o these_o part_n be_v drive_v therefore_o the_o king_n judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o fortify_v his_o port_n and_o see_v the_o great_a advantage_n of_o trade_n which_o begin_v then_o to_o rise_v much_o be_v resolve_v to_o encourage_v it_o for_o which_o end_n he_o intend_v to_o build_v many_o havens_n and_o harbour_n this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a charge_n and_o as_o his_o own_o revenue_n can_v not_o defray_v it_o so_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o lay_v heavy_a tax_n on_o his_o subject_n therefore_o the_o suppression_n of_o monastery_n be_v think_v the_o easy_a way_n of_o raise_v money_n he_o also_o intend_v to_o erect_v many_o more_o bishopric_n to_o which_o cranmer_n advise_v he_o much_o that_o the_o vastness_n of_o some_o diocese_n be_v reduce_v to_o a_o narrow_a compass_n bishop_n may_v better_o discharge_v their_o duty_n and_o oversee_v their_o flock_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a rule_n but_o cranmer_n do_v on_o another_o reason_n press_v the_o suppression_n of_o monastery_n he_o find_v that_o their_o foundation_n and_o whole_a state_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o a_o full_a and_o true_a reformation_n it_o for_o among_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v reform_v be_v these_o abuse_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o their_o constitution_n such_o as_o the_o belief_n of_o purgatory_n of_o redeem_v soul_n by_o mass_n the_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o image_n and_o pilgrimage_n and_o the_o like_a and_o therefore_o those_o society_n who_o interest_n it_o be_v to_o oppose_v the_o reformation_n be_v once_o to_o be_v suppress_v and_o then_o he_o hope_v upon_o new_a endowment_n and_o foundation_n new_a house_n shall_v have_v be_v erect_v at_o every_o cathedral_n to_o be_v nursery_n for_o that_o whole_a diocese_n which_o he_o think_v will_v be_v more_o suitable_a to_o the_o primitive_a use_n of_o monastery_n and_o more_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n this_o be_v his_o scheme_n as_o will_v afterward_o appear_v which_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n effect_v though_o not_o so_o full_o as_o he_o project_v for_o reason_n to_o be_v tell_v in_o their_o proper_a place_n dissolve_v there_o have_v be_v a_o bull_n send_v from_o rome_n for_o dissolve_v some_o monastery_n and_o erect_v bishopric_n out_o of_o they_o as_o be_v relate_v in_o the_o former_a book_n in_o the_o year_n 1532._o and_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v upon_o that_o authority_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1533._o the_o priory_n of_o christ_n church_n near_o algate_n in_o london_n be_v dissolve_v and_o give_v to_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n sir_n thomas_n audley_n not_o to_o make_v he_o speak_v shrill_a for_o his_o master_n in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o as_o fuller_n mistake_v it_o for_o he_o have_v be_v lord_n chancellor_n a_o year_n before_o this_o be_v give_v he_o the_o pope_n authority_n not_o be_v at_o that_o time_n put_v down_o nor_o the_o king_n supremacy_n set_v up_o i_o conjecture_v it_o be_v do_v pursuant_n to_o the_o bull_n for_o the_o dissolution_n of_o some_o religious_a house_n but_o i_o never_o see_v the_o dissolution_n and_o so_o can_v only_o guess_v 25._o on_o what_o ground_n it_o be_v make_v but_o in_o the_o parliament_n hold_v the_o former_a year_n in_o which_o the_o king_n grant_v of_o that_o house_n to_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n be_v confirm_v it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o preamble_n that_o the_o prior_n and_o convent_n have_v resign_v that_o house_n to_o the_o king_n the_o 24_o of_o february_n 23d_o regni_n and_o have_v leave_v their_o house_n but_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v upon_o what_o reason_n they_o do_v it_o visitor_n but_o now_o i_o come_v to_o consider_v how_o the_o visitor_n carry_v on_o their_o visitation_n many_o severe_a thing_n be_v say_v of_o their_o proceed_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o wonder_n that_o man_n who_o have_v trade_v so_o long_o in_o lie_n as_o the_o monk_n have_v do_v shall_v load_v those_o who_o they_o esteem_v the_o instrument_n of_o their_o ruin_n 4._o with_o many_o calumny_n by_o their_o letter_n to_o cromwell_n it_o appear_v that_o in_o most_o house_n they_o find_v monstrous_a disorder_n that_o many_o fall_v down_o on_o their_o knee_n and_o pray_v they_o may_v be_v discharge_v since_o they_o have_v be_v force_v to_o make_v vow_n against_o their_o will_n with_o these_o the_o visitor_n dispense_v and_o set_v they_o at_o liberty_n they_o find_v great_a
several_a age_n till_o the_o state_n of_o monkery_n rise_v and_o then_o when_o they_o engross_v the_o riches_n and_o the_o pope_n assume_v the_o dominion_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v not_o consistent_a with_o these_o design_n nor_o with_o the_o art_n use_v to_o promote_v they_o to_o let_v the_o scripture_n be_v much_o know_v therefore_o legend_n and_o strange_a story_n of_o vision_n with_o other_o device_n be_v think_v more_o proper_a for_o keep_v up_o their_o credit_n and_o carry_v on_o their_o ends._n it_o be_v now_o general_o desire_v that_o if_o there_o be_v just_a exception_n against_o what_o tindal_n have_v do_v these_o may_v be_v amend_v in_o a_o new_a translation_n this_o be_v a_o plausible_a thing_n and_o wrought_v much_o on_o all_o that_o hear_v it_o who_o plain_o conclude_v that_o those_o who_o deny_v the_o people_n the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n must_v needs_o know_v their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n to_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o it_o upon_o these_o ground_n cranmer_n who_o be_v project_v the_o most_o effectual_a mean_n for_o promote_a a_o reformation_n of_o doctrine_n move_v in_o convocation_n that_o they_o shall_v petition_v the_o king_n for_o leave_v to_o make_v a_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n but_o gardiner_n and_o all_o his_o party_n oppose_v it_o both_o in_o convocation_n and_o in_o secret_a with_o the_o king_n it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o the_o heresy_n and_o extravagant_a opinion_n which_o be_v then_o in_o germany_n and_o from_o thence_o come_v over_o to_o england_n it_o spring_v from_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o whereas_o in_o may_v the_o last_o year_n nineteen_o hollander_n be_v accuse_v of_o some_o heretical_a opinion_n deny_v christ_n to_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n or_o that_o he_o take_v flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n or_o that_o the_o sacrament_n have_v any_o effect_n on_o those_o that_o receive_v they_o in_o which_o opinion_n fourteen_o of_o they_o remain_v obstinate_a and_o be_v burn_v by_o pair_n in_o several_a place_n it_o be_v complain_v that_o all_o those_o draw_v their_o damnable_a error_n from_o the_o indiscreet_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o offer_v the_o bible_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n to_o the_o whole_a nation_n during_o these_o distraction_n will_v prove_v as_o they_o pretend_v the_o great_a snare_n that_o can_v be_v therefore_o they_o propose_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o short_a exposition_n of_o the_o most_o useful_a and_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n give_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o nation_n which_o will_v keep_v they_o in_o a_o certain_a subjection_n to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o other_o party_n though_o they_o like_v well_o the_o publish_n such_o a_o treatise_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n yet_o by_o no_o mean_n think_v that_o sufficient_a but_o say_v the_o people_n must_v be_v allow_v to_o search_v the_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o such_o treatise_n be_v according_a to_o it_o these_o argument_n prevail_v with_o the_o two_o house_n of_o convocation_n so_o they_o petition_v the_o king_n that_o he_o will_v give_v order_n to_o some_o to_o set_v about_o it_o to_o this_o great_a opposition_n be_v make_v at_o court_n some_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n tell_v the_o king_n that_o a_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n will_v arise_v out_o of_o it_o and_o that_o he_o can_v no_o more_o govern_v his_o subject_n if_o he_o give_v way_n to_o that_o but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n it_o be_v represent_v that_o nothing_o will_v make_v his_o supremacy_n so_o acceptable_a to_o the_o nation_n and_o make_v the_o pope_n more_o hateful_a than_o to_o let_v they_o see_v that_o whereas_o the_o pope_n have_v govern_v they_o by_o a_o blind_a obedience_n and_o keep_v they_o in_o darkness_n the_o king_n bring_v they_o into_o the_o light_n and_o give_v they_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o nothing_o will_v more_o effectual_o extirpate_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o discover_v the_o imposture_n of_o the_o monk_n than_o the_o bible_n in_o english_a in_o which_o all_o people_n will_v clear_o discern_v there_o be_v no_o foundation_n for_o those_o thing_n these_o argument_n join_v with_o the_o power_n that_o the_o queen_n have_v in_o his_o affection_n be_v so_o much_o consider_v by_o the_o king_n that_o he_o give_v order_n for_o set_v about_o it_o immediate_o to_o who_o that_o work_n be_v commit_v or_o how_o they_o proceed_v in_o it_o i_o know_v not_o for_o the_o account_n of_o these_o thing_n have_v not_o be_v preserve_v nor_o convey_v to_o we_o with_o that_o care_n that_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o thing_n require_v yet_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o work_n be_v carry_v on_o at_o a_o good_a rate_n for_o three_o year_n after_o this_o it_o be_v print_v at_o paris_n which_o show_v they_o make_v all_o convenient_a haste_n in_o a_o thing_n that_o require_v so_o much_o deliberation_n anne_n but_o this_o be_v the_o last_o public_a good_a act_n of_o this_o unfortunate_a queen_n who_o the_o near_o she_o draw_v to_o her_o end_n grow_v more_o full_a of_o good_a work_n she_o have_v distribute_v in_o the_o last_o nine_o month_n of_o her_o life_n between_o fourteen_o and_o fifteen_o thousand_o pound_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o be_v design_v great_a and_o public_a good_a thing_n and_o by_o all_o appearance_n if_o she_o have_v live_v the_o money_n that_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o suppression_n of_o religious_a house_n have_v be_v better_o employ_v than_o it_o be_v in_o january_n she_o bring_v forth_o a_o dead_a son_n this_o be_v think_v to_o have_v make_v ill_a impression_n on_o the_o king_n and_o that_o as_o he_o conclude_v from_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n by_o the_o former_a queen_n that_o the_o marriage_n be_v displease_v to_o god_n so_o he_o may_v upon_o this_o misfortune_n begin_v to_o make_v the_o like_a judgement_n of_o this_o marriage_n sure_o enough_o the_o popish_a party_n be_v earnest_o set_v against_o the_o queen_n look_v on_o she_o as_o the_o great_a supporter_n of_o heresy_n and_o at_o that_o time_n fox_n then_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n be_v in_o germany_n at_o smalcald_a treat_v a_o league_n with_o the_o protestant_a prince_n who_o insist_v much_o on_o the_o ausburg_n confession_n there_o be_v many_o conference_n between_o fox_n and_o doctor_n barnes_n on_o and_o some_o other_o with_o the_o lutheran_n divine_n for_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o thing_n be_v in_o a_o good_a forwardness_n all_o which_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o queen_n gardiner_z be_v then_o ambassador_n in_o france_n and_o write_v earnest_o to_o the_o king_n to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o enter_v into_o any_o religious_a league_n with_o these_o prince_n for_o that_o will_v alienate_v all_o the_o world_n from_o he_o and_o dispose_v his_o own_o subject_n to_o rebel_n the_o king_n think_v the_o german-prince_n and_o divine_n shall_v have_v submit_v all_o thing_n to_o his_o judgement_n and_o have_v such_o a_o opinion_n of_o his_o own_o learning_n and_o be_v so_o puff_v up_o with_o the_o flatter_a praise_n that_o he_o daily_o hear_v that_o he_o grow_v impatient_a of_o any_o opposition_n and_o think_v that_o he_o dictate_v shall_v pass_v for_o oracle_n and_o because_o the_o german_n will_v not_o receive_v they_o so_o his_o mind_n be_v alienate_v from_o they_o but_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n at_o court_n and_o gardiner_z beyond_o sea_n think_v there_o may_v easy_o be_v find_v a_o mean_a to_o accommodate_v the_o king_n both_o with_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n if_o the_o queen_n be_v once_o out_o of_o the_o way_n for_o than_o he_o may_v free_o marry_v any_o one_o who_o he_o please_v and_o that_o marriage_n with_o the_o male_a issue_n of_o it_o can_v not_o be_v dispute_v whereas_o as_o long_o as_o the_o queen_n live_v her_o marriage_n as_o be_v judge_v null_a from_o the_o beginning_n can_v never_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o of_o that_o party_n with_o these_o reason_n of_o state_n other_o of_o affection_n concur_v the_o queen_n have_v be_v his_o wife_n three_o year_n but_o at_o this_o time_n he_o entertain_v a_o secret_a love_n for_o jane_n seimour_n who_o have_v all_o the_o charm_n both_o of_o beauty_n and_o youth_n in_o her_o person_n and_o her_o humour_n be_v temper_v between_o the_o severe_a gravity_n of_o queen_n katherine_n and_o the_o gay_a pleasantness_n of_o queen_n anne_n the_o queen_n perceive_v this_o alienation_n of_o the_o king_n heart_n use_v all_o possible_a art_n to_o recover_v that_o affection_n of_o who_o decay_n she_o be_v sad_o sensible_a but_o the_o success_n be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o what_o she_o design_v for_o the_o king_n
receive_v it_o lay_v censure_n upon_o such_o as_o be_v present_a at_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o office_n and_o do_v not_o stay_v and_o communicate_v for_o the_o five_o it_o touch_v cranmer_n to_o the_o quick_a for_o he_o be_v then_o marry_v the_o scripture_n do_v in_o no_o place_n enjoin_v the_o celibate_n of_o the_o clergy_n on_o the_o contrary_a scripture_n speak_v of_o their_o wife_n and_o give_v the_o rule_n of_o their_o live_n with_o they_o and_o st._n paul_n in_o express_a word_n condemn_v all_o man_n leave_v their_o wife_n without_o exception_n say_v that_o the_o man_n have_v not_o power_n over_o his_o own_o body_n but_o the_o wife_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n though_o those_o that_o be_v in_o order_n do_v not_o marry_o yet_o such_o as_o be_v marry_v before_o order_n keep_v their_o wife_n of_o which_o there_o be_v many_o instance_n and_o when_o some_o move_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o all_o that_o have_v be_v marry_v when_o they_o enter_v into_o order_n shall_v put_v away_o their_o wife_n it_o be_v reject_v and_o ever_o since_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v allow_v their_o priest_n to_o keep_v their_o wife_n nor_o be_v it_o ever_o command_v in_o the_o western_a church_n till_o the_o pope_n begin_v their_o usurpation_n therefore_o the_o prohibition_n of_o it_o be_v only_o ground_v on_o the_o papal_a constitution_n it_o be_v not_o reasonable_a to_o keep_v it_o up_o since_o that_o authority_n on_o which_o it_o be_v build_v be_v now_o overthrow_v what_o be_v say_v concern_v auricular_a confession_n i_o can_v so_o easy_o recover_v for_o though_o cranmer_n argue_v three_o day_n against_o these_o article_n i_o can_v only_o gather_v the_o substance_n of_o his_o argument_n from_o what_o himself_o write_v on_o some_o of_o these_o head_n afterward_o for_o nothing_o remain_v of_o what_o pass_v there_o but_o what_o be_v convey_v to_o we_o in_o the_o journal_n which_o be_v short_a and_o defective_a on_o the_o 24_o of_o may_v the_o parliament_n be_v prorogue_v to_o the_o 30_o upon_o what_o reason_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v it_o be_v not_o to_o set_v any_o of_o the_o bill_n backward_o for_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o bill_n shall_v continue_v in_o the_o state_n in_o which_o they_o be_v then_o till_o their_o next_o meeting_n when_o they_o meet_v again_o on_o the_o 30_o of_o may_n be_v friday_n the_o lord_n chancellor_n intimate_v to_o they_o that_o not_o only_o the_o spiritual_a lord_n but_o the_o king_n himself_o have_v take_v much_o pain_n to_o bring_v thing_n to_o a_o agreement_n which_o be_v effect_v therefore_o he_o move_v in_o the_o king_n name_n that_o a_o bill_n may_v be_v bring_v in_o for_o punish_v such_o as_o offend_v against_o these_o article_n so_o the_o lord_n appoint_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n and_o st._n david_n and_o doctor_n petre_n a_o master_n of_o chancery_n afterward_o secretary_n of_o state_n to_o draw_v one_o bill_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n the_o bishop_n of_o duresin_n and_o winchester_n and_o doctor_n tregonnel_n another_o master_n of_o chancery_n to_o draw_v another_o bill_n about_o it_o and_o to_o have_v they_o both_o ready_a and_o to_o offer_v they_o to_o the_o king_n by_o sunday_n next_o but_o the_o bill_n that_o be_v draw_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o those_o with_o he_o be_v best_o like_v yet_o it_o seem_v the_o matter_n be_v long_o contest_v for_o it_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o the_o house_n before_o the_o seven_o of_o june_n and_o then_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n offer_v it_o and_o it_o be_v read_v the_o first_o time_n on_o the_o 9th_o of_o june_n it_o have_v the_o second_o read_v and_o on_o the_o 10_o it_o be_v engross_v and_o read_v the_o three_o time_n but_o when_o it_o pass_v the_o king_n desire_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o house_n since_o he_o can_v not_o give_v his_o consent_n to_o it_o but_o he_o humble_o excuse_v himself_o for_o he_o think_v he_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o stay_v and_o vote_n against_o it_o it_o be_v send_v down_o to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o where_o it_o meet_v with_o no_o great_a opposition_n for_o on_o the_o 14_o it_o be_v agree_v to_o and_o send_v up_o again_o and_o on_o the_o 28_o it_o have_v the_o force_n of_o a_o law_n by_o the_o royal_a assent_n the_o title_n of_o it_o be_v a_o act_n for_o abolish_n diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o certain_a article_n concern_v christian_n religion_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o preamble_n that_o the_o king_n they_o consider_v the_o bless_a effect_n of_o union_n and_o the_o mischief_n of_o discord_n since_o there_o be_v many_o different_a opinion_n both_o among_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n about_o some_o point_n of_o religion_n have_v call_v this_o parliament_n and_o a_o synod_n at_o the_o same_o time_n for_o remove_v these_o difference_n where_o six_o article_n be_v propose_v and_o long_o debate_v by_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o king_n himself_o have_v come_v in_o person_n to_o the_o parliament_n and_o council_n and_o open_v many_o thing_n of_o high_a learning_n and_o great_a knowledge_n about_o they_o and_o that_o he_o with_o the_o assent_n of_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n have_v agree_v on_o the_o follow_a article_n first_o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n after_o the_o consecration_n there_o remain_v no_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o under_o these_o form_n the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a second_o that_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o all_o person_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o that_o both_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v together_o in_o each_o of_o the_o kind_n three_o that_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o priesthood_n may_v not_o marry_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n four_o that_o vow_n of_o chastity_n ought_v to_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n five_o that_o the_o use_n of_o private_a mass_n ought_v to_o be_v continue_v which_o as_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n law_n so_o man_n receive_v great_a benefit_n by_o they_o six_o that_o auricular_a confession_n be_v expedient_a and_o necessary_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n the_o parliament_n thank_v the_o king_n for_o the_o pain_n he_o have_v take_v in_o these_o article_n and_o enact_v that_o if_o any_o after_o the_o 12_o of_o july_n do_v speak_v preach_v or_o write_v against_o the_o first_o article_n they_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v heretic_n and_o to_o be_v burn_v without_o any_o abjuration_n and_o to_o forfeit_v their_o real_a and_o personal_a estate_n to_o the_o king_n and_o those_o who_o preach_v or_o obstinate_o dispute_v against_o the_o other_o article_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v felon_n and_o to_o suffer_v death_n as_o felon_n without_o benefit_n of_o clergy_n and_o those_o who_o either_o in_o word_n or_o writing_n speak_v against_o they_o be_v to_o be_v prisoner_n during_o the_o king_n pleasure_n and_o forfeit_v their_o good_n and_o chattel_n to_o the_o king_n for_o the_o first_o time_n and_o if_o they_o offend_v so_o the_o second_o time_n they_o be_v to_o suffer_v as_o felon_n all_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v declare_v void_a and_o if_o any_o priest_n do_v still_o keep_v any_o such_o woman_n who_o he_o have_v so_o marry_v and_o live_v familiar_o with_o she_o as_o with_o his_o wife_n he_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v a_o felon_n and_o if_o a_o priest_n live_v carnal_o with_o any_o other_o woman_n he_o be_v upon_o the_o first_o conviction_n to_o forfeit_v his_o benefice_n good_n and_o chattel_n and_o to_o be_v imprison_v during_o the_o king_n pleasure_n and_o upon_o the_o second_o conviction_n be_v to_o suffer_v as_o a_o felon_n the_o woman_n so_o offend_v be_v also_o to_o be_v punish_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o priest_n and_o those_o who_o contemn_v or_o abstain_v from_o confession_n or_o the_o sacrament_n at_o the_o accustom_a time_n for_o the_o first_o offence_n be_v to_o forfeit_v their_o good_n and_o chattel_n and_o be_v imprison_v and_o for_o the_o second_o be_v to_o be_v adjudge_v of_o felony_n and_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o act_n commission_n be_v to_o be_v issue_v out_o to_o all_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o their_o chancellor_n and_o commissary_n and_o such_o other_o in_o the_o several_a shire_n as_o the_o king_n shall_v name_v to_o hold_v their_o session_n quarterly_a or_o often_o and_o they_o be_v to_o proceed_v upon_o presentment_n and_o by_o a_o jury_n those_o commissioner_n be_v to_o swear_v that_o they_o shall_v execute_v their_o commission_n indifferent_o without_o favour_n affection_n corruption_n or_o malice_n as_o ecclesiastical_a incumbent_n be_v to_o read_v this_o act_n in_o their_o church_n once_o a_o
of_o they_o than_o to_o direct_v their_o belief_n by_o they_o the_o king_n lean_v neither_o to_o the_o right_a nor_o to_o the_o left_a hand_n neither_o to_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o party_n but_o set_v the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n only_o before_o his_o eye_n and_o therefore_o be_v now_o resolve_v to_o have_v this_o set_v forth_o to_o his_o subject_n without_o any_o corrupt_a mixture_n and_o to_o have_v such_o decent_a ceremony_n continue_v and_o the_o true_a use_n of_o they_o teach_v by_o which_o all_o abuse_n may_v be_v cut_v off_o and_o dispute_n about_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n cease_v that_o so_o all_o his_o subject_n may_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o their_o faith_n and_o direct_v in_o the_o reverend_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o resolve_v to_o punish_v severe_o all_o transgressor_n of_o what_o sort_n or_o side_n soever_o they_o be_v the_o king_n be_v resolve_v that_o christ_n that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o truth_n shall_v have_v the_o victory_n and_o therefore_o have_v appoint_v some_o bishop_n and_o divine_n to_o draw_v up_o a_o exposition_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian-man_n who_o be_v the_o two_o arch-bishop_n the_o bishop_n of_o london_n duresm_n winchester_n rochester_n hereford_n and_o st._n david_n and_o doctor_n thirleby_n robertson_n cox_n day_n oglethorp_n redmayn_n edgeworth_n crayford_n symonds_n robins_n and_o tresham_n he_o have_v also_o appoint_v other_o to_o examine_v what_o ceremony_n shall_v be_v retain_v and_o what_o be_v the_o true_a use_n of_o they_o who_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n ely_n sarum_n chichester_n worcester_n and_o landaff_n the_o king_n have_v also_o command_v the_o judge_n and_o other_o justice_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o person_n commission_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o act_n former_o pass_v to_o proceed_v against_o all_o transgressor_n and_o punish_v they_o according_a to_o law_n 1540_o and_o he_o conclude_v with_o a_o high_a commendation_n of_o the_o king_n who_o due_a praise_n he_o say_v a_o man_n of_o far_o great_a eloquence_n than_o himself_o be_v can_v not_o full_o set_v forth_o the_o lord_n approve_v of_o this_o nomination_n and_o order_v that_o these_o committee_n shall_v sit_v constant_o on_o munday_n wedensday_n and_o friday_n and_o no_o other_o day_n they_o be_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o afternoon_n but_o their_o proceed_n will_v require_v so_o full_a a_o relation_n that_o i_o shall_v first_o open_v the_o other_o affair_n that_o pass_v in_o this_o session_n and_o leave_v these_o to_o the_o last_o on_o the_o 14_o of_o april_n the_o king_n create_v cromwell_n earl_n of_o essex_n essex_n the_o male_a line_n of_o the_o bourchier_n that_o have_v carry_v that_o title_n be_v extinguish_v this_o show_v that_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o cromwel_n fall_n must_v be_v find_v in_o some_o other_o thing_n than_o his_o make_n up_o the_o king_n marriage_n who_o have_v never_o thus_o raise_v his_o title_n if_o he_o have_v intend_v so_o soon_o to_o pull_v he_o down_o on_o the_o 22d_o of_o april_n a_o bill_n be_v bring_v in_o for_o suppress_v the_o knight_n of_o st._n john_n of_o jerusalem_n jerusalem_n their_o first_o foundation_n be_v to_o be_v a_o guard_n to_o the_o pilgrim_n that_o go_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n for_o some_o age_n that_o be_v extol_v as_o the_o high_a expression_n of_o devotion_n and_o reverence_n to_o our_o saviour_n to_o go_v and_o view_v the_o place_n of_o his_o abode_n and_o chief_o the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_a bury_v and_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n upon_o which_o many_o enter_v into_o a_o religious_a knighthood_n who_o be_v to_o defend_v the_o holy_a land_n and_o conduct_v the_o pilgrim_n those_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o knights-templar_n and_o hospitaller_n the_o former_a be_v the_o great_a and_o rich_a but_o the_o other_o be_v also_o very_o considerable_a the_o pope_n and_o their_o clergy_n do_v everywhere_o animate_v all_o prince_n and_o great_a person_n to_o undertake_v expedition_n into_o these_o part_n which_o be_v very_o costly_a and_o dangerous_a and_o prove_v fatal_a to_o almost_o all_o the_o prince_n that_o make_v they_o yet_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n from_o which_o all_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o pope_n power_n who_o go_v on_o this_o expedition_n such_o as_o die_v in_o it_o be_v also_o reckon_v martyr_n wrought_v wonderful_o on_o a_o blind_a and_o superstitious_a age._n but_o such_o as_o can_v not_o go_v be_v persuade_v that_o if_o on_o their_o deathbed_n they_o vow_v to_o go_v upon_o their_o recovery_n and_o leave_v some_o land_n to_o maintain_v a_o knight_n that_o shall_v go_v thither_o and_o fight_v against_o the_o infidel_n it_o will_v do_v as_o well_o upon_o this_o great_a and_o vast_a endowment_n be_v make_v but_o there_o be_v many_o complaint_n make_v of_o the_o templar_n for_o betray_v and_o rob_v the_o pilgrim_n and_o other_o horrid_a abuse_n which_o may_v reasonable_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v be_v true_a though_o other_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n lie_v the_o blame_n rather_o on_o the_o covetousness_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o pope_n malice_n to_o they_o yet_o in_o a_o general_n council_n the_o whole_a order_n be_v condemn_v and_o suppress_v and_o such_o of_o they_o as_o can_v be_v take_v be_v cruel_o put_v to_o death_n the_o order_n of_o the_o hospitaller_n stand_v yet_o do_v not_o grow_v much_o after_o that_o they_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o the_o holy-land_n by_o the_o sultan_n and_o late_o out_o of_o the_o isle_n of_o rhodes_n and_o be_v at_o this_o time_n in_o malta_n their_o great_a master_n depend_v on_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n so_o it_o be_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o let_v a_o house_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o a_o foreign_a power_n stand_v long_o and_o it_o seem_v they_o will_v not_o willing_o surrender_v up_o their_o house_n as_o other_o have_v do_v therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o force_v they_o out_o of_o it_o by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o on_o the_o 22d_o of_o april_n be_v read_v the_o first_o time_n and_o on_o the_o 26_o the_o second_o time_n and_o on_o the_o 29_o the_o three_o time_n by_o which_o both_o their_o house_n in_o england_n and_o another_o they_o have_v in_o kilmainam_n in_o ireland_n be_v suppress_v great_a pension_n be_v reserve_v by_o the_o act_n to_o the_o prior_n a_o 1000_o lib._n to_o he_o of_o st._n johns_n near_a london_n and_o 500_o mark_n to_o the_o other_o with_o very_o considerable_a allowance_n for_o the_o knight_n which_o in_o all_o amount_v near_o to_o 3000_o lib._n yearly_a but_o on_o the_o 14_o of_o may_v the_o parliament_n be_v prorogue_v to_o the_o 25_o and_o a_o vote_n pass_v that_o their_o bill_n shall_v remain_v in_o the_o state_n they_o be_v in_o upon_o their_o next_o meeting_n as_o they_o be_v go_v on_o in_o their_o business_n a_o great_a change_n of_o court_n break_v out_o for_o on_o the_o 13_o of_o june_n at_o the_o council_n table_n the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n in_o the_o king_n name_n challenge_v the_o lord_n cromwell_n of_o high_a treason_n 〈◊〉_d and_o arrest_v he_o send_v he_o prisoner_n to_o the_o tower_n he_o have_v many_o enemy_n among_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n the_o nobility_n despise_v he_o and_o think_v it_o lessen_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o title_n to_o see_v the_o son_n of_o a_o blacksmith_n raise_v so_o many_o degree_n above_o they_o his_o aspire_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o garter_n be_v think_v inexcusable_a vanity_n and_o his_o have_v so_o many_o place_n heap_v on_o he_o as_o lord_n privy_a seal_n lord_n chamberlain_n of_o england_n and_o lord_n vicegerent_n with_o the_o mastership_n of_o the_o roll_n with_o which_o he_o have_v but_o late_o part_v draw_v much_o envy_n on_o he_o all_o the_o popish_a party_n hate_v he_o out_o of_o measure_n the_o suppression_n of_o the_o abbey_n be_v lay_v whole_o at_o his_o door_n the_o attaindor_n and_o all_o other_o severe_a proceed_n be_v impute_v to_o his_o counsel_n he_o be_v also_o think_v to_o be_v the_o person_n that_o have_v keep_v the_o king_n and_o the_o emperor_n at_o such_o distance_n and_o therefore_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n and_o gardiner_z beside_o private_a animosity_n hate_v he_o on_o that_o account_n and_o they_o do_v not_o think_v it_o impossible_a if_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o bring_v on_o a_o treaty_n with_o the_o emperor_n which_o they_o hope_v will_v open_v the_o way_n for_o one_o with_o the_o pope_n but_o other_o more_o secret_a reason_n wrought_v his_o ruin_n with_o the_o king_n the_o fear_n he_o be_v in_o of_o a_o conjunction_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o france_n do_v now_o abate_v for_o he_o understand_v that_o it_o go_v no_o further_a
sermon_n a_o priest_n come_v to_o have_v kill_v he_o be_v take_v with_o the_o weapon_n in_o his_o hand_n but_o when_o the_o people_n be_v rush_v furious_o on_o he_o wishart_n get_v he_o in_o his_o arm_n and_o save_v he_o from_o their_o rage_n for_o he_o say_v he_o have_v do_v no_o harm_n only_o they_o see_v what_o they_o may_v look_v for_o he_o become_v a_o little_a after_o this_o more_o than_o ordinary_a serious_a and_o apprehensive_a of_o his_o end_n he_o be_v see_v sometime_o to_o rise_v in_o the_o night_n and_o spend_v the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o in_o prayer_n and_o he_o often_o warn_v his_o hearer_n that_o his_o suffering_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o that_o few_o shall_v suffer_v after_o he_o and_o that_o the_o light_n of_o true_a religion_n shall_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a land_n he_o go_v to_o a_o great_a many_o place_n where_o his_o sermon_n be_v well_o receive_v and_o come_v last_o to_o lothian_n where_o he_o find_v a_o great_a neglect_n of_o the_o gospel_n than_o in_o other_o part_n for_o which_o he_o threaten_v they_o that_o stranger_n shall_v chase_v they_o from_o their_o dwelling_n and_o possess_v they_o he_o be_v lodge_v in_o a_o gentleman_n of_o quality_n house_n cockburn_n of_o ormeston_n when_o in_o the_o night_n the_o house_n be_v beset_v by_o some_o horseman_n who_o be_v send_v by_o the_o cardinal_n mean_n to_o take_v he_o the_o earl_n of_o bothwel_n that_o have_v the_o chief_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o county_n be_v with_o they_o who_o promise_v that_o no_o hurt_n shall_v be_v do_v he_o he_o cause_v the_o gate_n to_o be_v open_v say_v the_o bless_a will_n of_o god_n be_v do_v when_o he_o present_v himself_o to_o the_o earl_n of_o bothwel_n he_o desire_v to_o be_v proceed_v with_o according_a to_o law_n for_o he_o say_v he_o fear_v less_o to_o die_v open_o than_o to_o be_v murder_v in_o secret_a the_o earl_n promise_v upon_o his_o honour_n that_o no_o harm_n shall_v be_v do_v he_o and_o for_o some_o time_n seem_v resolve_v to_o have_v make_v his_o word_n good_a but_o the_o queen_n mother_n and_o cardinal_n in_o end_n prevail_v with_o he_o to_o put_v wishart_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o they_o send_v he_o to_o st._n andrews_n where_o it_o be_v agree_v to_o make_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o he_o upon_o this_o the_o cardinal_n call_v a_o meeting_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o st._n andrews_n against_o the_o 27_o of_o february_n to_o destroy_v he_o with_o the_o more_o ceremony_n but_o the_o archbishop_n of_o glasgow_n move_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o warrant_n procure_v from_o the_o lord_n governor_n for_o their_o proceed_n to_o this_o the_o cardinal_n consent_v think_v the_o governor_n be_v then_o so_o link_v to_o their_o interest_n that_o he_o will_v deny_v they_o nothing_o but_o the_o governor_n bear_v in_o his_o heart_n a_o secret_a love_n to_o religion_n and_o be_v plain_o deal_v with_o by_o a_o noble_a gentleman_n of_o his_o name_n 〈…〉_z preston_n who_o lay_v before_o he_o the_o just_a and_o terrible_a judgement_n of_o god_n he_o may_v look_v for_o if_o he_o suffer_v poor_a innocent_n to_o be_v so_o murder_v at_o the_o appetite_n of_o the_o clergy_n send_v the_o cardinal_n word_n not_o to_o proceed_v till_o he_o himself_o come_v and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o consent_v to_o his_o death_n till_o the_o cause_n be_v well_o examine_v and_o that_o if_o the_o cardinal_n proceed_v against_o he_o his_o blood_n shall_v be_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n but_o the_o cardinal_n resolve_v to_o go_v on_o at_o his_o peril_n for_o he_o apprehend_v if_o he_o delay_v it_o there_o may_v be_v either_o a_o legal_a or_o a_o violent_a rescue_n make_v so_o he_o order_v a_o mock_n citation_n of_o wishart_n to_o appear_v who_o be_v bring_v the_o next_o day_n to_o the_o abbey-church_n the_o process_n be_v open_v with_o a_o sermon_n in_o which_o the_o preacher_n deliver_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o good_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a touchstone_n by_o which_o heresy_n be_v to_o be_v try_v after_o sermon_n the_o prisoner_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o bar_n he_o first_o fall_v down_o on_o his_o knee_n and_o after_o a_o short_a prayer_n he_o stand_v up_o and_o give_v a_o long_a account_n of_o his_o sermon_n that_o he_o have_v preach_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n but_o be_v interrupt_v with_o reproachful_a word_n and_o require_v to_o answer_v plain_o to_o the_o article_n ob●ected_v to_o he_o upon_o which_o he_o appeal_v to_o a_o indifferent_a judge_n he_o desire_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o before_o my_o lord_n governor_n who_o prisoner_n he_o be_v but_o the_o indictment_n be_v read_v he_o confess_v and_o offer_v to_o justify_v most_o of_o the_o article_n object_v against_o he_o be_v judge_v a_o obstinate_a heretic_n and_o condemn_v to_o be_v burn_v all_o the_o next_o night_n he_o spend_v in_o prayer_n in_o the_o morning_n two_o ●riers_n come_v to_o confess_v he_o but_o he_o say_v he_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o they_o yet_o if_o he_o can_v he_o will_v glad_o speak_v with_o the_o learned_a man_n that_o preach_v the_o day_n before_o so_o he_o be_v send_v to_o he_o after_o much_o conference_n he_o ask_v he_o if_o he_o will_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n wishart_n answer_v he_o will_v most_o glad_o do_v it_o if_o he_o may_v have_v it_o as_o christ_n have_v institute_v it_o under_o both_o kind_n but_o the_o cardinal_n will_v not_o su●fer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v give_v he_o and_o so_o breakfast_n be_v bring_v he_o discourse_v to_o those_o that_o be_v present_a of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o then_o have_v bless_v and_o consecrate_v the_o element_n he_o take_v the_o sacrament_n himself_o and_o give_v it_o to_o those_o that_o be_v with_o he_o that_o be_v do_v he_o will_v taste_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o retire_v to_o his_o devotion_n two_o hour_n after_o the_o executioner_n come_v and_o put_v on_o he_o a_o coat_n of_o black_a linen_n full_a of_o bag_n of_o powder_n and_o carry_v he_o out_o to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n which_o be_v before_o the_o cardinal_n castle_n he_o speak_v a_o little_a to_o the_o people_n desire_v they_o not_o to_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o suffering_n that_o follow_v it_o it_o be_v the_o true_a gospel_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o for_o which_o with_o a_o most_o glad_a heart_n and_o mind_n he_o now_o offer_v up_o his_o life_n the_o cardinal_n be_v set_v in_o state_n in_o a_o great_a window_n of_o his_o castle_n look_v on_o this_o sad_a spectacle_n when_o wishart_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o stake_n he_o cry_v aloud_o o_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o ●ather_o of_o heaven_n i_o recommend_v my_o spirit_n into_o thy_o holy_a hand_n so_o the_o executioner_n kindle_v the_o fire_n but_o one_o perceive_v after_o some_o time_n that_o he_o be_v yet_o alive_a encourage_v he_o to_o call_v still_o on_o god_n to_o who_o he_o answer_v the_o flame_n have_v scorch_v my_o body_n yet_o have_v it_o not_o daunt_v my_o spirit_n but_o he_o who_o from_o yonder_o high_a place_n look_v up_o to_o the_o cardinal_n behold●th_v we_o with_o such_o pride_n shall_v within_o few_o day_n lie_v in_o the_o same_o as_o ignominious_o as_o now_o he_o be_v see_v proud_o to_o rest_v himself_o the_o executioner_n draw_v the_o cord_n that_o be_v about_o his_o neck_n strait_o s●opt_v his_o breath_n so_o that_o he_o can_v speak_v no_o more_o and_o his_o body_n be_v soon_o consume_v by_o the_o fire_n thus_o die_v this_o eminent_a servant_n and_o witness_n of_o christ_n on_o who_o suffering_n i_o have_v enlarge_v the_o more_o because_o they_o prove_v so_o fatal_a to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n for_o not_o any_o one_o thing_n hasten_v forward_o the_o reformation_n more_o than_o this_o do_v and_o since_o he_o have_v both_o his_o education_n and_o ordination_n in_o england_n a_o full_a account_n of_o he_o seem_v no_o impertinent_a digression_n the_o clergy_n rejoice_v much_o at_o his_o death_n and_o think_v according_a to_o the_o constant_a maxim_n of_o all_o persecutor_n that_o they_o shall_v live_v more_o at_o ease_n now_o when_o wishart_n be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n they_o magnify_v the_o cardinal_n for_o proceed_v so_o vigorous_o without_o or_o rather_o against_o the_o governor_n order_n but_o the_o people_n do_v universal_o look_v on_o he_o as_o a_o martyr_n and_o believe_v a_o extraordinary_a measure_n of_o god_n spirit_n have_v rest_v on_o he_o since_o beside_o great_a innocency_n and_o purity_n of_o life_n his_o prediction_n come_v so_o oft_o to_o
that_o commotion_n be_v severe_o handle_v it_o be_v by_o their_o mean_n that_o the_o discontent_n be_v chief_o foment_v they_o have_v take_v all_o the_o oath_n that_o be_v enjoin_v they_o and_o yet_o continue_v to_o be_v still_o practise_v against_o the_o state_n which_o as_o it_o be_v high_o contrary_a to_o the_o peaceable_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n so_o it_o be_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o they_o profess_v that_o oblige_v they_o to_o forsake_v the_o world_n and_o to_o follow_v a_o religious_a and_o spiritual_a course_n of_o life_n 1538._o the_o next_o example_n of_o justice_n be_v a_o year_n after_o this_o heresy_n of_o one_o forest_n a_o observant_a friar_n he_o have_v be_v as_o sanders_n say_v confessor_n to_o queen_n katherine_n but_o it_o seem_v depart_v from_o her_o interest_n for_o he_o insinuate_v himself_o so_o into_o the_o king_n that_o he_o recover_v his_o good_a opinion_n be_v a_o ignorant_a and_o lewd_a man_n he_o be_v account_v by_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o that_o house_n to_o which_o he_o belong_v in_o greenwich_n a_o reproach_n to_o their_o order_n concern_v this_o i_o have_v see_v a_o large_a account_n in_o a_o original_a letter_n write_v by_o a_o brother_n of_o the_o same_o house_n have_v regain_v the_o king_n good_a opinion_n he_o put_v all_o those_o who_o have_v favour_v the_o divorce_n under_o great_a fear_n for_o he_o proceed_v cruel_o against_o they_o and_o one_o rainscroft_n be_v suspect_v to_o have_v give_v secret_a intelligence_n of_o what_o be_v do_v among_o they_o be_v shut_v up_o and_o so_o hardly_o use_v that_o he_o die_v in_o their_o hand_n which_o be_v as_o that_o letter_n relate_v do_v by_o friar_n forest_n mean_n this_o friar_n be_v find_v to_o have_v deny_v the_o king_n supremacy_n for_o though_o he_o himself_o have_v swear_v it_o yet_o he_o have_v infuse_v it_o into_o many_o in_o confession_n that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v question_v for_o these_o practice_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o oath_n that_o he_o have_v take_v he_o answer_v that_o he_o take_v that_o oath_n with_o his_o outward_a man_n hall_n but_o his_o inward_a man_n have_v never_o consent_v to_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o his_o trial_n and_o accuse_v of_o several_a heretical_a opinion_n that_o he_o hold_v he_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n 1538._o upon_o this_o he_o have_v more_o freedom_n allow_v he_o in_o the_o prison_n but_o some_o come_n to_o he_o divert_v he_o from_o the_o submission_n he_o have_v offer_v so_o that_o when_o the_o paper_n of_o abjuration_n be_v bring_v he_o he_o refuse_v to_o set_v his_o hand_n to_o it_o upon_o which_o he_o be_v judge_v a_o obstinate_a heretic_n the_o record_n of_o these_o proceed_n be_v lose_v but_o the_o book_n of_o that_o time_n say_v that_o he_o deny_v the_o gospel_n it_o be_v like_o it_o be_v upon_o that_o pretence_n that_o without_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n it_o have_v no_o authority_n upon_o which_o several_a writer_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v say_v undecent_a and_o scandalous_a thing_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o be_v bring_v to_o smithfield_n where_o be_v present_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o council_n to_o offer_v he_o his_o pardon_n if_o he_o will_v abjure_v latimer_n make_v a_o sermon_n against_o his_o error_n and_o study_v to_o persuade_v he_o to_o recant_v but_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o former_a opinion_n so_o he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n in_o a_o most_o severe_a manner_n he_o be_v hang_v in_o a_o chain_n about_o his_o middle_n and_o the_o great_a image_n that_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o wal●s_n be_v break_v to_o piece_n and_o serve_v for_o fuel_n to_o burn_v he_o he_o show_v great_a unquietness_n of_o mind_n and_o end_v his_o life_n in_o a_o ungodly_a manner_n as_o hall_n say_v who_o add_v this_o character_n of_o he_o that_o he_o have_v little_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o sincere_a truth_n and_o less_o trust_n in_o he_o at_o his_o end_n in_o winter_n that_o year_n a_o correspondence_n be_v discover_v with_o cardinal_n pole_n friend_n who_o be_v barefaced_a in_o his_o treasonable_a design_n against_o the_o king_n his_o brother_n sir_n geoffrey_n pole_n discover_v the_o whole_a plot._n for_o which_o the_o marquis_n of_o exeter_n that_o be_v the_o king_n cousin-german_n by_o his_o mother_n who_o be_v edward_n the_o 4ths_n daughter_n the_o lord_n montacute_n the_o cardinal_n brother_n sir_n geoffrey_n pole_n and_o sir_n edward_n nevil_n be_v send_v to_o the_o tower_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o november_n they_o be_v accuse_v for_o have_v maintain_v a_o correspondence_n with_o the_o cardinal_n and_o for_o express_v a_o hatred_n of_o the_o king_n with_o a_o dislike_n of_o his_o proceed_n and_o a_o readiness_n to_o rise_v upon_o any_o good_a opportunity_n that_o may_v offer_v itself_o the_o special_a matter_n bring_v against_o the_o lord_n montacute_n and_o the_o marquis_n of_o excet●r_n who_o be_v try_v by_o their_o peer_n on_o the_o 2d_o and_o 3d_o of_o december_n in_o the_o 30_o year_n of_o this_o reign_n be_v that_o whereas_o cardinal_n pole_n and_o other_o have_v cast_v off_o their_o allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n and_o go_v and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n the_o king_n mortal_a enemy_n the_o lord_n montacute_n do_v on_o the_o 24_o of_o july_n in_o the_o 28_o year_n of_o the_o king_n reign_n a_o few_o month_n before_o the_o rebellion_n break_v out_o say_v that_o he_o like_v well_o the_o proceed_n of_o his_o brother_n the_o cardinal_n but_o do_v not_o like_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o say_v i_o trust_v to_o see_v a_o change_n of_o this_o world_n i_o trust_v to_o have_v a_o fair_a day_n upon_o those_o knave_n that_o rule_v about_o the_o king_n and_o i_o trust_v to_o see_v a_o merry_a world_n one_o day_n word_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n be_v also_o charge_v on_o the_o marquis_n the_o lord_n montacute_n further_o say_v i_o will_v i_o be_v over_o the_o sea_n with_o my_o brother_n for_o this_o world_n will_v one_o day_n come_v to_o stripe_n it_o must_v needs_o so_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o i_o fear_v we_o shall_v lack_v nothing_o so_o much_o as_o honest_a man_n he_o also_o say_v he_o have_v dream_v that_o the_o king_n be_v dead_a and_o though_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o dead_a he_o will_v die_v sudden_o one_o day_n his_o leg_n will_v kill_v he_o and_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v jolly_a stir_n say_v also_o that_o he_o have_v never_o love_v he_o from_o his_o childhood_n and_o that_o cardinal_n wolsey_n will_v have_v be_v a_o honest_a man_n if_o he_o have_v have_v a_o honest_a master_n and_o the_o king_n have_v say_v to_o the_o lord_n he_o woul●●eave_v they_o one_o day_n have_v some_o apprehension_n he_o may_v short_o die_v that_o lord_n say_v if_o he_o will_v serve_v we_o so_o we_o shall_v be_v happy_o rid_v a_o time_n will_v come_v i_o fear_v we_o shall_v not_o tarry_v the_o time_n we_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o he_o have_v also_o say_v he_o be_v sorry_a the_o lord_n ab●rg●●●●y_o be_v dead_a for_o he_o can_v have_v make_v ten_o thousand_o man_n and_o for_o his_o part_n he_o will_v go_v and_o live_v in_o the_o west_n where_o the_o marquis_n of_o exciter_n be_v strong_a and_o have_v also_o say_v upon_o the_o break_n of_o the_o northern_a rebellion_n that_o the_o lord_n darcy_n play_v the_o fool_n for_o he_o go_v to_o pluck_v away_o the_o council_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v begin_v with_o the_o head_n first_o but_o i_o beshrew_v he_o for_o leave_v off_o so_o soon_o these_o be_v the_o word_n charge_v on_o those_o lord_n as_o clear_a discovery_n of_o their_o treasonable_a design_n and_o that_o they_o know_v of_o the_o rebellion_n that_o break_v out_o and_o only_o intend_v to_o have_v keep_v it_o off_o to_o a_o fit_a opportunity_n they_o be_v also_o accuse_v of_o correspondence_n with_o cardinal_n pol●_n that_o be_v the_o king_n declare_v enemy_n upon_o these_o point_n the_o lord_n plead_v not_o guilty_a but_o be_v find_v guilty_a by_o their_o peer_n and_o so_o judgement_n be_v give_v on_o the_o four_o of_o december_n be_v indict_v sir_n geoffrey_n pol●_n for_o hold_v correspondence_n with_o his_o brother_n the_o cardinal_n and_o say_v that_o he_o approve_v of_o his_o proceed_n but_o not_o of_o the_o king_n sir_n ed●ard_n nevil_n brother_n to_o the_o lord_n abergaveny_n for_o say_v the_o king_n be_v a_o beast_n and_o worse_o than_o a_o beast_n george_n crofts_n chancellor_n of_o the_o cathedral_n of_o chichester_n for_o say_v the_o king_n be_v not_o b●t_v the_o pope_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o john_n collins_n for_o say_v the_o king_n will_v hang_v in_o h●ll_n one_o day_n for_o the_o pluck_n down_o of_o
censure_v p._n 259_o a_o act_n about_o the_o suppression_n of_o all_o monastery_n p._n 260_o another_o for_o erect_v new_a bishopric_n p._n 262_o the_o king_n design_n about_o these_o ibid._n a_o act_n for_o obedience_n to_o the_o king_n proclamation_n p._n 263_o a_o act_n concern_v precedence_n p._n 264_o some_o act_n of_o attaindor_n ibid._n the_o king_n care_n of_o cranmer_n p._n 265_o who_o write_v against_o the_o six_o article_n ibid._n proceed_n upon_o that_o act_n p._n 266_o bonner_n commission_n for_o hold_v his_o bishopric_n of_o the_o king_n p._n 267_o the_o total_a dissolution_n of_o abbey_n ibid._n which_o be_v sell_v or_o give_v away_o p._n 268_o a_o project_n of_o a_o seminary_n for_o minister_n of_o state_n p._n 269_o a_o proclamation_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o bible_n p._n 270_o the_o king_n design_n to_o marry_n anne_n of_o cleve_n ibid._n who_o come_v over_o but_o be_v dislike_v by_o the_o king_n p._n 271_o anno_fw-la 1540_o but_o he_o marry_v she_o yet_o can_v never_o love_v she_o p._n 273_o a_o parliament_n be_v call_v p._n 274_o where_o cromwell_n speak_v as_o lord_n vicegerent_n ibid._n the_o suppression_n of_o the_o knight_n of_o st._n john_n of_o jerusalem_n p._n 275_o cromwell_n fall_n p._n 276_o the_o king_n be_v in_o love_n with_o katherine_n howard_n ibid._n cranmers_n friendship_n to_o cromwell_n p._n 277_o cromwel_n attaindor_n p._n 278_o censure_n pass_v upon_o it_o p._n 279_o the_o king_n divorce_n be_v propose_v p._n 280_o and_o refer_v to_o the_o convocation_n ibid._n reason_n pretend_a for_o it_o ibid._n the_o convocation_n agree_v to_o it_o p._n 281_o which_o be_v much_o censure_v ibid._n it_o be_v confirm_v in_o parliament_n p._n 282_o the_o queen_n consent_v to_o it_o ibid._n a_o act_n about_o the_o incontinence_n of_o priest_n ibid._n another_o act_n about_o religion_n ibid._n another_o concern_v precontract_n p._n 283_o subsidy_n grant_v by_o clergy_n and_o laity_n ibid._n cromwell_n death_n p._n 284_o his_o character_n ibid._n design_n against_o cranmer_n p._n 285_o some_o bishop_n and_o divine_n consult_v about_o religion_n p._n 286_o a_o explanation_n of_o faith_n ibid._n cranmers_n opinion_n about_o it_o p._n 288_o they_o explain_v the_o apostle_n creed_n ibid._n and_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n with_o great_a care_n p._n 289_o as_o also_o the_o ten_o commandment_n p._n 290_o the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o ave_fw-la maria_n and_o freewill_n p._n 291_o and_o justification_n and_o good_a work_n p._n 292_o publish_v by_o the_o king_n but_o much_o censure_v p._n 293_o a_o correction_n of_o the_o missall_n p._n 294_o the_o suffering_n of_o barnes_n and_o other_o p._n 295_o they_o be_v condemn_v unheard_a p._n 297_o their_o speech_n at_o their_o death_n ibid._n bonner_n cruelty_n p._n 299_o new_a bishopric_n found_v p._n 300_o cranmer_n design_n be_v defeat_v p._n 301_o these_o foundation_n be_v censure_v ibid._n the_o state_n of_o the_o court_n p._n 302_o the_o bible_n be_v set_v up_o in_o church_n ibid._n a_o order_n for_o churchman_n housekeep_n p._n 303_o the_o king_n go_v to_o york_n p._n 304_o the_o state_n of_o scotland_n ibid._n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o reformation_n p._n 305_o patrick_n hamiltons_n suffering_n ibid._n a_o further_a prosecution_n p._n 308_o the_o king_n be_v whole_o quiet_v by_o the_o clergy_n p._n 309_o some_o put_v to_o death_n other_o escape_v p._n 310_o the_o queen_n ill_a life_n be_v discover_v p._n 312_o anno_fw-la 1542._o a_o parliament_n call_v ibid._n a_o act_n about_o the_o queen_n much_o censure_v p._n 313_o a_o design_n to_o suppress_v the_o english_a bible_n p._n 314_o the_o bible_n order_v to_o be_v revise_v by_o the_o university_n p._n 315._o b._n bonner_n injunction_n ibid._n the_o way_n of_o preach_v at_o that_o time_n p._n 316_o play_n and_o interlude_n then_o act_v p._n 318_o war_n between_o england_n and_o scotland_n ibid._n the_o scot_n be_v defeat_v and_o their_o king_n die_v p._n 320_o anno_fw-la 1543._o cranmer_z promote_v a_o reformation_n p._n 321_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n for_o it_o ibid._n another_o about_o the_o king_n proclamation_n p._n 322_o a_o league_n between_o the_o king_n and_o the_o emperor_n p._n 323_o a_o match_n design_v with_o scotland_n ibid._n but_o the_o french_a party_n prevail_v there_o p._n 324_o a_o war_n with_o france_n p._n 325_o a_o persecution_n of_o the_o reformer_n ibid._n marbecks_n great_a ingeniousness_n p._n 326_o three_o burn_v at_o windsor_n p._n 327_o their_o persecutor_n be_v perjure_a ibid._n a_o design_n against_o cranmer_n ibid._n it_o come_v to_o nothing_o p._n 328_o his_o christian_a behaviour_n ibid._n anno_fw-la 1544._o a_o new_a parliament_n ibid._n a_o act_n about_o the_o succession_n ibid._n a_o act_n against_o conspiracy_n p._n 330_o a_o act_n for_o revise_v the_o canon-law_n ibid._n a_o discharge_n of_o the_o king_n debt_n ibid._n the_o war_n against_o scotland_n p._n 331_o audley_n the_o chancellor_n die_v ibid._n the_o prayer_n be_v put_v in_o english_a ibid._n bulloign_n be_v take_v p._n 332_o anno._n 1545._o the_o german_n mediate_v a_o peace_n between_o england_n and_o france_n ibid._n some_o great_a church-preferment_n p._n 333_o wisharts_n suffering_n in_o scotland_n ibid._n cardinal_n beaton_n be_v kill_v p._n 336_o anno_fw-la 1546._o a_o new_a parliament_n p._n 338._o chapel_n and_o chantery_n give_v to_o the_o king_n ibid._n the_o king_n speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n ibid._n the_o king_n confirm_v the_o right_n of_o university_n p._n 334_o a_o peace_n with_o france_n p._n 340_o design_n of_o a_o further_a reformation_n ibid._n shaxtons_n apostasy_n ibid._n the_o trouble_n of_o anne_n askew_n p._n 341_o she_o endure_v the_o rack_n p._n 342_o and_o be_v burn_v with_o some_o other_o ibid._n a_o design_n against_o cranmer_n ibid._n the_o king_n take_v care_n of_o he_o p._n 343_o a_o design_n against_o the_o queen_n p._n 344_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n disgrace_n p._n 345_o anno_fw-la 1547._o the_o earl_n of_o surrey_n be_v execute_v p._n 346_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n submission_n ibid._n a_o parliament_n meet_v p._n 347_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n be_v attaint_v ibid._n his_o death_n prevent_v by_o the_o king_n p._n 348_o the_o emperor_n design_n against_o the_o protestant_n ibid._n the_o king_n sickness_n ibid._n his_o latter_a will_v a_o forgery_n p._n 349_o the_o king_n severity_n against_o the_o popish_a party_n p._n 351_o some_o carthusian_n execute_v for_o deny_v the_o king_n supremacy_n p._n 352_o and_o a_o priest_n for_o treason_n ibid._n three_o monk_n execute_v ibid._n fisher_n trial_n and_o death_n p._n 353_o his_o character_n p._n 354_o moor_n trial_n and_o death_n ibid._n his_o character_n p._n 355_o attaind●rs_n after_o the_o rebellion_n be_v quiet_v p._n 356_o censure_n pass_v upon_o it_o p._n 357_o f._n forest_n equivocation_n and_o heresy_n ibid._n the_o proceed_n against_o cardinal_n pole_n friend_n p._n 358_o attaindor_n without_o hear_v the_o party_n p._n 359_o the_o conclusion_n p._n 362_o addenda_fw-la p._n 363_o a_o collection_n of_o record_n and_o original_a paper_n with_o other_o instrument_n refer_v to_o in_o the_o former_a history_n i._o the_o record_n of_o card._n adrian_n oath_n of_o fidelity_n to_o henry_n the_o seven_o for_o the_o bishopric_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n henricus_fw-la rex_fw-la etc._n etc._n reverend_a roll_n in_o christo_fw-la patri_fw-la domino_fw-la sylvestro_n episcop_n wigorn._n venerabili_fw-la viro_fw-la domino_fw-la roberto_n sherbourn_n ecclesiae_fw-la sancti_fw-la pauli_n london_n decano_fw-la nostris_fw-la in_o romana_fw-la curia_fw-la oratoribus_fw-la ac_fw-la magistro_fw-la hugoni_n yowng_v sacrae_fw-la theologiae_n professori_fw-la salutem_fw-la cum_fw-la omnes_fw-la &_o singuli_fw-la archiepiscopi_fw-la &_o episcopi_fw-la huius_fw-la nostri_fw-la inclyti_fw-la regni_fw-la quorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la nominationes_fw-la &_o promotiones_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsas_fw-la supremas_fw-la dignitates_fw-la nobis_fw-la attinent_fw-la ex_fw-la regali_fw-la &_o peculiari_fw-la quadam_fw-la praerogativa_fw-la jureque_fw-la municipali_fw-la ac_fw-la inveterata_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la hactenus_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la nostro_fw-la regno_fw-la inconcusse_fw-la &_o inviolabiliter_fw-la observata_fw-la teneantur_fw-la &_o astringantur_fw-la statim_fw-la &_o immediate_a post_fw-la impetratas_fw-la bullas_fw-la apostolicas_fw-la super_fw-la eorundem_fw-la promotione_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsam_fw-la nostram_fw-la nominationem_fw-la coram_fw-la nobis_fw-la &_o in_fw-la praesentia_fw-la nostra_fw-la si_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la nostro_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la vel_fw-la coram_fw-la commissarijs_fw-la nostris_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la &_o legittime_fw-la deputatis_fw-la si_fw-la alibi_fw-la moram_fw-la traxerunt_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la palam_fw-la publicae_fw-la &_o express_v totaliter_fw-la cedere_fw-la &_o in_o manus_fw-la nostras_fw-la renunciare_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o quibus●unque_fw-la verbis_fw-la clausulis_fw-la &_o sententiis_fw-la in_o ipsis_fw-la bullis_n apostolicis_fw-la contentis_fw-la &_o descriptis_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la vel_fw-la quovis_fw-la modo_fw-la in_o futurumesse_n poterunt_fw-la praejudicialia_fw-la sive_fw-la damnosa_fw-la nobis_fw-la haeredibusque_fw-la de_fw-la
papa_n placari_fw-la ac_fw-la regis_fw-la zelum_fw-la ad_fw-la sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la totiusque_fw-la regni_fw-la devotionem_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la parte_fw-la habere_fw-la posset_n materiam_fw-la commendandi_fw-la et_fw-la addidit_fw-la ultra_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la requisitionem_fw-la &_o exhortationem_fw-la praefatus_fw-la reverendissimus_fw-la pater_fw-la archiepiscopus_fw-la cantuariensis_n &_o ex_fw-la cord_n ut_fw-la apparuit_fw-la exposuit_fw-la lacrymando_fw-la pericula_fw-la per_fw-la censurarum_fw-la viz._n ecclesiasticarum_fw-la &_o etiam_fw-la interdicti_fw-la fulminationem_fw-la &_o alius_fw-la tam_fw-la regi_fw-la quam_fw-la regno_fw-la quod_fw-la absit_fw-la verisimiliter_fw-la eventura_fw-la alia_fw-la in_fw-la casu_fw-la quo_fw-la responsio_fw-la parliamenti_fw-la illius_fw-la in_fw-la materia_fw-la tunc_fw-la declarata_fw-la grata_fw-la non_fw-la foret_fw-la domino_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o accepta_fw-la sic_fw-la dicendo_fw-la forte_n videtur_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la vestrum_fw-la quod_fw-la haec_fw-la quae_fw-la regni_fw-la praelatos_fw-la potissime_fw-la concernunt_fw-la ex_fw-la cord_n non_fw-la profero_fw-la sciatis_fw-la pro_fw-la certo_fw-la &_o in_o fide_fw-la qua_fw-la deo_fw-la teneor_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la affirmo_fw-la coram_fw-la vobis_fw-la quod_fw-la magis_fw-la mihi_fw-la foret_fw-la acceptum_fw-la nunquam_fw-la confer_v aut_fw-la etiam_fw-la habere_fw-la aliquod_fw-la beneficium_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la quam_fw-la aliqua_fw-la talia_fw-la pericula_fw-la seu_fw-la processus_fw-la meo_fw-la tempore_fw-la in_o ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n scandalum_fw-la venirent_fw-la ulterius_fw-la idem_fw-la reverendissimus_fw-la pater_fw-la express_v declaravit_fw-la qualiter_fw-la dictus_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la papa_n in_fw-la diversis_fw-la bullis_n suis_fw-la obtulit_fw-la &_o promisit_fw-la se_fw-la &_o sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la ad_fw-la quascunque_fw-la causas_fw-la &_o occasiones_fw-la editionis_fw-la statuti_fw-la praedicti_fw-la rationabile_fw-la remedium_fw-la apponere_fw-la &_o materias_fw-la causarum_fw-la &_o occasionum_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la statuti_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la tollere_fw-la &_o abolere_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la requisitione_fw-la exhortatione_n &_o periculorum_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la expositione_n finitis_fw-la reverendissimi_fw-la patres_fw-la cantuar._n &_o eborac_n archiepiscopi_fw-la cum_fw-la confratribus_fw-la suis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o praelatis_fw-la praedictis_fw-la recesserunt_fw-la regni_fw-la communitate_fw-la seu_fw-la saltem_fw-la dictis_fw-la viris_fw-la communitatem_fw-la regni_fw-la repraesentantibus_fw-la remanentibus_fw-la &_o circa_fw-la materiam_fw-la eye_n expositam_fw-la tractantibus_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la &_o declarationem_fw-la requisitionem_fw-la &_o exhortationem_fw-la hujusmodique_fw-la periculorum_fw-la expositionem_fw-la per_fw-la dictum_fw-la dominum_fw-la archiepiscopum_fw-la cantuariensem_fw-la ut_fw-la praemittitur_fw-la factas_fw-la audientibus_fw-la venerabilibus_fw-la viris_fw-la richardo_n coudray_n archidiacono_n norwici_n in_o ecclesia_fw-la norwicensi_fw-la magistro_fw-la joanne_n forster_n canonico_n lincolnensi_fw-la etc._n etc._n &_o johanne_n boold_v notario_fw-la publico_fw-la &_o multis_fw-la aliis_fw-la act._n 33._o anno_fw-la regni_fw-la vicesimo_fw-la tertio_fw-la xli_o a_o act_n concern_v restraint_n of_o payment_n of_o annates_fw-la to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v well_o perceive_v by_o long_a approve_a experience_n that_o great_a and_o inestimable_a sum_n of_o money_n have_v be_v daily_o convey_v out_o of_o this_o realm_n to_o the_o impoverishment_n of_o the_o same_o and_o special_o such_o sum_n of_o money_n as_o the_o pope_n holiness_n his_o predecessor_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n by_o long_a time_n have_v heretofore_o take_v of_o all_o and_o singular_a those_o spiritual_a person_n which_o have_v be_v name_v elect_v present_v or_o postulate_v to_o be_v arch-bishop_n or_o bishop_n within_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n under_o the_o title_n of_o annates_fw-la otherwise_o call_v first-fruit_n which_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n have_v be_v take_v of_o every_o archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n within_o this_o realm_n by_o restraint_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n for_o confirmation_n election_n admission_n postulation_n provision_n collation_n disposition_n institution_n installation_n investiture_n order_n holy_a benediction_n palles_fw-la or_o other_o thing_n requisite_a and_o necessary_a to_o the_o attain_n of_o those_o their_o promotion_n and_o have_v be_v compel_v to_o pay_v before_o they_o can_v attain_v the_o same_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n before_o they_o may_v receive_v any_o part_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o say_a archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n whereunto_o they_o be_v name_v elect_v present_v or_o postulate_v by_o occasion_n whereof_o not_o only_o the_o treasure_n of_o this_o realm_n have_v be_v great_o convey_v out_o of_o the_o same_o but_o also_o it_o have_v happen_v many_o time_n by_o occasion_n of_o death_n unto_o such_o arch-bishop_n and_o bishop_n so_o new_o promote_v within_o two_o or_o three_o year_n after_o he_o or_o their_o consecration_n that_o his_o or_o their_o friend_n by_o who_o he_o or_o they_o have_v be_v holpen_v to_o advance_v and_o make_v payment_n of_o the_o say_v annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n have_v be_v thereby_o utter_o undo_v and_o impoverish_v and_o for_o because_o the_o say_v annates_fw-la have_v rise_v grow_v and_o increase_v by_o a_o uncharitable_a custom_n ground_v upon_o no_o just_a or_o good_a title_n and_o the_o payment_n thereof_o obtain_v by_o restraint_n of_o bull_n until_o the_o same_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n have_v be_v pay_v or_o surety_n make_v for_o the_o same_o which_o declare_v the_o say_a payment_n to_o be_v exact_v and_o take_v by_o constraint_n against_o all_o equity_n and_o justice_n the_o noble_a man_n therefore_o of_o the_o realm_n and_o the_o wise_a sage_n politic_a commons_o of_o the_o same_o assemble_v in_o this_o present_a parliament_n consider_v that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n cease_v not_o to_o tax_v take_v and_o exact_v the_o say_v great_a sum_n of_o money_n under_o the_o title_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a to_o the_o great_a damage_n of_o the_o say_a prelate_n and_o this_o realm_n which_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n be_v first_o suffer_v to_o be_v take_v within_o the_o same_o realm_n for_o the_o only_a defence_n of_o christian_a people_n against_o the_o infidel_n and_o now_o they_o be_v claim_v and_o demand_v as_o mere_a duty_n only_o for_o lucre_n against_o all_o right_a and_o conscience_n insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v evident_o know_v that_o there_o have_v pass_v out_o of_o this_o realm_n unto_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n sithen_a the_o second_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o most_o noble_a prince_n of_o famous_a memory_n king_n henry_n the_o seven_o unto_o this_o present_a time_n under_o the_o name_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n pay_v for_o the_o expedition_n of_o bull_n of_o archbishopric_n and_o bishopric_n the_o sum_n of_o eight_o hundred_o thousand_o ducat_n amount_v in_o sterling_a money_n at_o the_o least_o to_o eightscore_o thousand_o pound_n beside_o other_o great_a and_o intolerable_a sum_n which_o have_v yearly_o be_v convey_v to_o the_o say_a court_n of_o rome_n by_o many_o other_o way_n and_o mean_n to_o the_o great_a impoverishment_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o albeit_o that_o our_o say_a sovereign_n the_o king_n and_o all_o his_o natural_a subject_n as_o well_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a be_v as_o obedient_a devout_a catholic_n and_o humble_a child_n of_o god_n and_o holy_a church_n as_o any_o people_n be_v within_o any_o realm_n christen_v yet_o the_o say_a exaction_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n be_v so_o intolerable_a and_o importable_a to_o this_o realm_n that_o it_o be_v consider_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o this_o realm_n now_o represent_v by_o all_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o same_o assemble_v in_o this_o present_a parliament_n that_o the_o king_n highness_n before_o almighty_a god_n be_v bind_v as_o by_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a christian_a prince_n for_o the_o conservation_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o good_a estate_n and_o commonwealth_n of_o this_o his_o realm_n to_o do_v all_o that_o in_o he_o be_v to_o obviate_v repress_v and_o redress_v the_o say_a abusion_n and_o exaction_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n and_o because_o that_o divers_a prelate_n of_o this_o realm_n be_v now_o in_o extreme_a age_n and_o in_o other_o debility_n of_o their_o body_n so_o that_o of_o likelihood_n bodily_a death_n in_o short_a time_n shall_v or_o may_v succeed_v unto_o they_o by_o reason_n whereof_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n shall_v short_o after_o their_o death_n be_v convey_v unto_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o unreasonable_a and_o uncharitable_a cause_n abovesaid_a to_o the_o universal_a damage_n prejudice_n and_o impoverishment_n of_o this_o realm_n if_o speedy_a remedy_n be_v not_o in_o due_a time_n provide_v it_o be_v therefore_o ordain_v establish_a and_o enact_v by_o authority_n of_o this_o present_a parliament_n that_o the_o unlawful_a payment_n of_o annates_fw-la or_o first-fruit_n and_o all_o manner_n contribution_n for_o the_o same_o for_o any_o archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n or_o for_o any_o bull_n hereafter_o to_o be_v obtain_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o or_o for_o the_o foresay_a purpose_n and_o intent_n shall_v from_o henceforth_o utter_o cease_v and_o no_o such_o hereafter_o to_o be_v pay_v for_o any_o archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n
to_o the_o article_n hereafter_o follow_v the_o number_n of_o which_o house_n in_o every_o county_n limit_v in_o their_o commission_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o sa●d_a commission_n a_o original_a henry_n r._n first_o after_o the_o division_n make_v one_o auditor_n pierpoint_n one_o particular_a receiver_n one_o clerk_n of_o the_o register_n of_o the_o last_o visitation_n with_o three_o other_o discreet_a person_n to_o be_v name_v by_o the_o king_n in_o every_o county_n where_o any_o such_o house_n be_v after_o their_o repair_n to_o such_o house_n shall_v declare_v to_o the_o governor_n and_o religious_a person_n of_o the_o same_o the_o statute_n of_o dissolution_n the_o commission_n and_o the_o cause_n and_o purpose_n of_o their_o repair_n for_o that_o time_n item_n that_o after_o the_o declaration_n make_v the_o say_a commissioner_n shall_v swear_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o house_n or_o such_o other_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o same_o house_n or_o other_o as_o you_o shall_v think_v can_v best_a declare_v the_o state_n and_o plight_n of_o the_o same_o to_o make_v declaration_n and_o answer_n to_o the_o article_n there_o under-written_a item_n of_o what_o order_n rule_n or_o religion_n the_o same_o house_n be_v and_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o cell_n or_o not_o and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o cell_n than_o the_o commissioner_n to_o deliver_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o house_n a_o privy_a seal_n and_o also_o to_o enjoin_v he_o in_o the_o king_n name_n under_o a_o great_a pain_n to_o appear_v without_o delay_n before_o the_o chancellor_n of_o the_o augmentation_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o king_n crown_n and_o the_o council_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n not_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o same_o cell_n till_o the_o king_n pleasure_n be_v further_o know_v item_n what_o number_n of_o person_n of_o religion_n be_v in_o the_o same_o and_o the_o conversation_n of_o their_o life_n and_o how_o many_o of_o they_o be_v priest_n and_o how_o many_o of_o they_o will_v go_v to_o other_o house_n of_o that_o religion_n or_o how_o many_o will_v take_v capacity_n and_o how_o many_o servant_n or_o hind_n the_o same_o house_n keep_v common_o and_o what_o other_o person_n have_v their_o live_n in_o the_o same_o house_n item_n to_o survey_v the_o quantity_n or_o value_n of_o the_o lead_n and_o bell_n of_o the_o same_o house_n as_o near_o as_o they_o can_v with_o the_o ruin_n decay_n state_n and_o plight_n of_o the_o same_o item_n incontinent_o to_o call_v for_o the_o covent-seal_n with_o all_o write_n and_o charter_n evidence_n and_o muniment_n concern_v any_o of_o the_o possession_n to_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o and_o put_v the_o same_o in_o sure_a keep_n and_o to_o take_v a_o just_a inventory_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o governor_n or_o other_o head-officer_n by_o indenture_n of_o the_o ornament_n plate_n jewel_n chattel_n ready_a money_n stuff_v of_o household_n coin_n as_o well_o sign_v as_o not_o sign_v stock_n and_o store_n in_o the_o farmor_n hand_n and_o the_o value_n thereof_o as_o near_o as_o they_o can_v which_o be_v appertain_v to_o the_o same_o house_n the_o first_o day_n of_o march_n last_o pass_v and_o what_o debt_n the_o house_n do_v owe_v and_o to_o what_o person_n and_o what_o debt_n be_v owe_v to_o they_o and_o by_o who_o item_n after_o to_o cause_v the_o covent_n or_o common-seal_n the_o plate_n jewel_n and_o ready_a money_n to_o be_v put_v in_o safe_a keep_n and_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o particular_n specify_v in_o the_o inventory_n to_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o governor_n or_o some_o other_o head-officer_n without_o waste_v or_o consumption_n of_o the_o same_o unless_o it_o be_v for_o necessary_a expense_n of_o the_o house_n item_n that_o they_o command_v the_o governor_n or_o other_o receiver_n of_o the_o same_o house_n to_o receive_v no_o rent_n of_o their_o farm_n until_o they_o know_v further_o of_o the_o king_n pleasure_n except_o such_o rent_n as_o must_v needs_o be_v have_v for_o their_o necessary_a food_n or_o sustenance_n or_o for_o payment_n of_o their_o servant_n wage_n item_n to_o survey_v discreet_o the_o demesne_n of_o the_o same_o house_n that_o be_v to_o say_v such_o as_o have_v not_o be_v common_o use_v to_o be_v let_v out_o and_o to_o certify_v the_o clear_a yearly_a value_n thereof_o item_n to_o examine_v the_o true_a yearly_a value_n of_o all_o the_o farm_n of_o the_o same_o house_n deduct_v thereof_o rent_n reserve_v pension_n and_o portion_n pay_v out_o of_o the_o same_o synodal_n and_o proxy_n bailiff_n receiver_n steward_n and_o auditor_n fee_n and_o the_o name_n of_o they_o to_o who_o they_o be_v pay_v and_o due_a and_o to_o none_o other_o item_n what_o lease_n have_v be_v make_v to_o any_o farmer_n of_o the_o farm_n pertain_v to_o the_o same_o house_n and_o what_o rent_n they_o reserve_v and_o to_o who_o and_o for_o how_o many_o year_n and_o a_o copy_n of_o the_o indenture_n if_o they_o can_v get_v it_o or_o else_o the_o counter-pane_n item_n to_o search_v and_o inquire_v what_o wood_n park_n forest_n commons_o or_o other_o profit_n belong_v to_o any_o of_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o same_o house_n the_o number_n of_o the_o acre_n the_o age_n and_o value_n as_o near_o as_o they_o can_v item_n what_o grant_v bargain_n sales_n gift_n alienation_n lease_n of_o any_o land_n tenement_n wood_n or_o office_n have_v be_v make_v by_o any_o the_o say_a governor_n of_o any_o of_o the_o say_a house_n within_o one_o year_n next_o before_o the_o 4_o the_o day_n of_o february_n last_o pass_v and_o of_o what_o thing_n or_o to_o what_o value_n and_o to_o who_o and_o for_o what_o estate_n item_n if_o there_o be_v any_o house_n of_o the_o religion_n aforesaid_a omit_v and_o not_o certify_v in_o the_o exchequer_n than_o the_o say_a commissioner_n to_o survey_v the_o same_o and_o to_o make_v certificate_n according_o item_n that_o they_o strait_o command_v every_o governor_n of_o every_o such_o house_n limit_v in_o their_o commission_n to_o sow_n and_o till_o their_o ground_n as_o they_o have_v do_v before_o till_o the_o king_n pleasure_n be_v further_o know_v item_n if_o there_o be_v any_o house_n give_v by_o the_o king_n to_o any_o person_n in_o any_o of_o the_o say_v several_a limit_n of_o the_o say_a commission_n the_o name_n whereof_o shall_v be_v declare_v to_o the_o say_a commissioner_n then_o the_o say_a commissioner_n shall_v immediate_o take_v the_o covent_n from_o the_o governor_n and_o take_v a_o inventory_n indent_v of_o the_o lead_n bell_n debt_n good_n chattel_n plate_n jewel_n ornament_n stock_n and_o store_n to_o the_o king_n use_n and_o to_o make_v sale_n of_o the_o good_n chattel_n and_o other_o implement_n plate_n and_o jewel_n only_o except_v item_n the_o say_v commissioner_n in_o every_o such_o house_n to_o send_v such_o of_o the_o religious_a person_n that_o will_v remain_v in_o the_o same_o religion_n to_o some_o other_o great_a house_n of_o that_o religion_n by_o their_o discretion_n with_o a_o letter_n to_o a_o governor_n for_o the_o receipt_n of_o they_o and_o the_o residue_n of_o they_o that_o will_v go_v to_o the_o world_n to_o send_v they_o to_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n and_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n for_o their_o capacity_n with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o same_o commissioner_n item_n the_o say_v commissioner_n to_o give_v the_o say_v person_n that_o will_v have_v capacity_n some_o reasonable_a reward_n according_a to_o the_o distance_n of_o the_o place_n by_o their_o discretion_n to_o be_v appoint_v item_n the_o say_v commissioner_n to_o command_v the_o governor_n to_o resort_v to_o the_o chancellor_n of_o the_o augmentation_n for_o his_o yearly_a stipend_n and_o pension_n item_n if_o there_o be_v any_o house_n dissolve_v or_o give_v up_o to_o the_o king_n by_o their_o deed_n than_o the_o commissioner_n shall_v order_v themselves_o in_o every_o point_n and_o purpose_n as_o the_o house_n give_v by_o the_o king_n to_o any_o other_o person_n in_o form_n aforesaid_a item_n every_o of_o the_o say_a commissioner_n have_v in_o charge_n to_o survey_v more_o than_o one_o shire_n within_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o commission_n immediate_o after_o they_o have_v peruse_v one_o shire_n parcel_n of_o their_o charge_n in_o form_n aforesaid_a shall_v send_v to_o the_o chancellor_n of_o the_o court_n for_o the_o augmentation_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o king_n crown_n a_o brief_a certificate_n of_o all_o these_o comperts_n according_a to_o the_o instruction_n aforesaid_a what_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o premise_n and_o in_o every_o county_n so_o surveigh_v then_o to_o proceed_v further_o to_o another_o county_n and_o so_o as_o they_o pass_v the_o say_a county_n to_o make_v like_o certificate_n and_o so_o forth_o till_o their_o limit_n be_v surveigh_v and_o there_o to_o remain_v till_o they_o know_v further_o of_o the_o king_n
have_v be_v afterward_o publish_v but_o this_o sanders_n thought_n be_v a_o pretty_a embellishment_n of_o his_o fable_n and_o of_o a_o piece_n with_o this_o be_v his_o next_o 33._o he_o say_v the_o king_n do_v under_o his_o own_o hand_n confess_v ibid._n he_o have_v know_v boleyn_n sister_n mary_n and_o desire_v the_o pope_n will_v dispense_v with_o his_o marry_n ann_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o appear_v from_o the_o recital_n of_o it_o and_o how_o come_v it_o that_o these_o letter_n be_v not_o publish_v nor_o be_v there_o any_o mention_n of_o this_o in_o all_o the_o dispatch_n i_o have_v see_v and_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o in_o so_o many_o conference_n which_o the_o english_a ambassador_n have_v with_o the_o pope_n these_o two_o thing_n shall_v never_o have_v be_v discourse_v of_o and_o can_v it_o be_v think_v credible_a that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o the_o king_n pretend_v such_o scruple_n and_o trouble_n of_o conscience_n he_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o so_o much_o folly_n and_o impudence_n as_o to_o put_v himself_o thus_o in_o the_o pope_n mercy_n by_o two_o such_o demand_n this_o be_v a_o forgery_n of_o cardinal_n pole_n which_o sanders_n greedy_o catch_v to_o dress_v up_o the_o scene_n 34._o 34._o from_o page_n 34_o to_o 42_o there_o be_v a_o trifle_a account_n give_v of_o the_o reason_n bring_v against_o the_o marriage_n which_o sanders_n answer_v manful_o and_o fight_v courageous_o against_o the_o man_n of_o straw_n he_o have_v set_v up_o but_o if_o that_o be_v compare_v with_o what_o have_v be_v open_v in_o the_o history_n it_o will_v appear_v how_o lame_a and_o defective_a his_o account_n be_v 42._o 35._o he_o say_v clerk_n bishop_n of_o bath_n and_o wells_n tonstal_v bishop_n of_o london_n and_o west_n bishop_n of_o ely_n write_v for_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o king_n marriage_n all_o the_o bishop_n except_o fisher_n have_v a_o year_n before_o this_o give_v it_o under_o their_o hand_n and_o seal_n that_o the_o king_n marriage_n be_v unlawful_a and_o in_o all_o the_o memorial_n of_o that_o time_n fisher_n be_v the_o only_a bishop_n i_o find_v mention_v to_o have_v write_v for_o it_o tonstall_n be_v also_o soon_o after_o translate_v to_o duresme_fw-fr which_o none_o that_o have_v consider_v that_o king_n temper_n will_v think_v can_v have_v be_v do_v if_o he_o have_v interpose_v in_o so_o tender_a a_o point_n against_o what_o the_o king_n so_o vehement_o desire_v ibid._n 36._o he_o say_v that_o abel_n powel_n fetherston_n and_o ridley_n also_o write_v for_o the_o marriage_n this_o be_v not_o likely_a of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o for_o they_o be_v afterward_o attaint_v of_o treason_n no_o such_o book_n be_v object_v to_o they_o but_o the_o crime_n charge_v on_o they_o be_v only_o that_o they_o say_v the_o king_n marriage_n with_o q._n katherine_n be_v good_a 43._o 37._o he_o say_v all_o thing_n appear_v clear_a in_o the_o trial_n before_o the_o legate_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o marriage_n so_o that_o they_o can_v give_v no_o sentence_n against_o such_o full_a evidence_n as_o be_v bring_v for_o it_o this_o be_v say_v without_o any_o regard_n to_o truth_n for_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o have_v be_v allege_v be_v clear_o prove_v for_o the_o contrary_a side_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o prince_n arthur_n marry_v the_o queen_n violent_a presumption_n appear_v of_o his_o consummate_v the_o marriage_n it_o be_v also_o prove_v that_o the_o king_n be_v under_o age_n when_o the_o bull_n be_v obtain_v and_o that_o the_o petition_n give_v in_o his_o name_n upon_o which_o the_o bull_n be_v grant_v be_v false_a that_o the_o king_n have_v not_o desire_v it_o but_o when_o he_o come_v of_o age_n he_o have_v protest_v against_o it_o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o hazard_n of_o a_o war_n between_o spain_n and_o england_n the_o prevent_v which_o be_v the_o chief_a reason_n set_v down_o in_o the_o bull_n that_o permit_v it_o so_o that_o all_o that_o have_v be_v inform_v at_o rome_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v full_o prove_v before_o the_o legate_n by_o clear_a instrument_n and_o many_o and_o noble_a witness_n ibid._n 38._o he_o put_v a_o long_a bold_a speech_n in_o campegio_n mouth_n who_o be_v far_o from_o assume_v such_o freedom_n but_o live_v licentious_o in_o england_n in_o all_o manner_n of_o disorder_n of_o which_o both_o he_o and_o his_o bastard_n son_n be_v guilty_a and_o by_o dissemble_v and_o other_o art_n persuade_v the_o king_n to_o delay_v the_o process_n from_o day_n to_o day_n give_v he_o full_a assurance_n that_o in_o conclusion_n he_o shall_v obtain_v what_o he_o desire_v and_o by_o such_o mean_v he_o gain_v time_n and_o draw_v out_o the_o trial_n till_o the_o pope_n have_v end_v his_o treaty_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o then_o he_o serve_v he_o a_o italian_a trick_n by_o adjourn_v the_o court._n 39_o he_o say_v some_o doctor_n be_v corrupt_v with_o the_o king_n money_n 48._o declare_v for_o he_o but_o those_o be_v none_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a the_o king_n order_v those_o he_o send_v not_o to_o give_v or_o promise_v any_o thing_n to_o any_o person_n till_o they_o have_v deliver_v their_o opinion_n free_o upon_o which_o some_o of_o they_o write_v to_o he_o that_o they_o will_v answer_v upon_o their_o head_n that_o they_o have_v follow_v his_o order_n in_o that_o particular_a 40._o he_o say_v ibid._n these_o determination_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o university_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n by_o a_o false_a representation_n of_o so_o great_a authority_n be_v the_o public_a seal_n of_o the_o university_n put_v to_o their_o determination_n after_o a_o long_a debate_n all_o be_v require_v to_o deliver_v their_o conscience_n upon_o oath_n and_o do_v with_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a faculty_n in_o some_o place_n false_a representation_n this_o be_v do_v in_o italy_n in_o milan_n bononia_n ferrara_n and_o milan_n under_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n eye_n and_o within_o their_o dominion_n 41._o he_o say_v 50._o endeavour_n be_v use_v to_o corrupt_v the_o university_n of_o colen_n and_o some_o other_o in_o germany_n for_o which_o great_a sum_n be_v offer_v and_o that_o the_o king_n be_v at_o a_o vast_a expense_n in_o it_o crook_n account_n show_v that_o his_o expense_n in_o italy_n be_v very_o inconsiderable_a and_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o when_o paris_n milan_n and_o bononia_n have_v declare_v for_o the_o king_n he_o will_v be_v much_o concern_v for_o colen_n or_o any_o other_o university_n in_o germany_n those_o who_o will_v believe_v sander_n and_o such_o author_n as_o he_o quote_v cochleus_n and_o a_o unknown_a bishop_n of_o brasile_n may_v if_o they_o will_n 42._o he_o say_v 51._o in_o oxford_n the_o king_n not_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n in_o that_o matter_n eight_o student_n of_o the_o university_n break_v into_o the_o place_n where_o the_o seal_n be_v lay_v and_o put_v it_o to_o a_o answer_n which_o pass_v for_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o university_n the_o lord_n herbert_n say_v there_o be_v a_o original_a instrument_n pass_v which_o he_o see_v by_o which_o the_o university_n do_v appoint_v a_o committee_n of_o 33_o doctor_n and_o bachelor_n of_o divinity_n to_o examine_v the_o question_n propose_v by_o the_o king_n and_o to_o set_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o university_n to_o any_o answer_n that_o they_o shall_v agree_v on_o and_o these_o do_v afterward_o give_v a_o resolution_n against_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o marriage_n 43._o he_o tell_v a_o long_a story_n of_o the_o king_n endeavour_n to_o gain_v reginald_n pole_n and_o that_o he_o come_v over_o to_o england_n 52._o and_o be_v much_o press_v by_o his_o kindred_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o king_n he_o go_v to_o he_o full_o purpose_v to_o have_v do_v it_o but_o can_v not_o speak_v a_o word_n to_o he_o till_o he_o resolve_v to_o talk_v to_o he_o in_o another_o stile_n and_o then_o he_o find_v his_o tongue_n and_o speak_v very_o free_o to_o the_o king_n who_o put_v his_o hand_n sometime_o to_o his_o poniard_n intend_v to_o have_v kill_v he_o but_o be_v overcome_v with_o the_o simplicity_n and_o humility_n of_o his_o discourse_n and_o so_o the_o king_n continue_v his_o pension_n to_o he_o and_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o go_v back_o to_o milan_n this_o be_v another_o pretty_a adventure_n of_o one_o of_o the_o hero_n of_o the_o romance_n but_o have_v this_o misfortune_n in_o it_o that_o it_o be_v all_o without_o any_o proof_n for_o as_o none_o of_o the_o book_n of_o that_o time_n ever_o mention_v it_o so_o neither_o do_v pole_n himself_o pretend_v to_o have_v carry_v so_o in_o his_o book_n though_o write_v with_o the_o most_o provoke_a insolence_n that_o be_v possible_a in_o it_o he_o mention_n
which_o see_v page_n 224._o which_o be_v so_o open_o discover_v nothing_o that_o have_v shame_n in_o it_o can_v speak_v of_o they_o as_o our_o author_n do_v 131._o 101._o he_o say_v six_o and_o twenty_o cart_n draw_v with_o ox_n be_v load_v with_o the_o riches_n take_v from_o becket_n shrine_n who_o he_o make_v a_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n that_o die_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o be_v honour_v by_o many_o miracle_n after_o his_o death_n other_o writer_n have_v sufficient_o show_v what_o a_o perfidious_a ingrateful_a and_o turbulent_a priest_n he_o be_v all_o these_o be_v virtue_n in_o our_o author_n opinion_n and_o ingredient_n in_o his_o faith_n but_o he_o have_v in_o this_o account_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o that_o shrine_n go_v beyond_o himself_o have_v by_o a_o figure_n of_o speech_n very_o familiar_a to_o he_o call_v lie_v increase_v two_o chest_n see_v page_n 224._o to_o 26_o cart_n load_v 1●2_n 102._o he_o say_v the_o sentence_n which_o p._n paul_n give_v out_o against_o the_o king_n be_v affix_v in_o some_o town_n both_o in_o france_n flanders_n and_o scotland_n from_o which_o he_o infer_v that_o both_o the_o emperor_n the_o french_a and_o the_o scotch_a king_n do_v consent_n to_o that_o sentence_n in_o this_o he_o design_v a_o eminent_a piece_n of_o service_n to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v to_o leave_v on_o record_n a_o evidence_n that_o three_o sovereign_a prince_n have_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n power_n of_o depose_v king_n but_o he_o do_v ill_a to_o name_v the_o proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n and_o have_v do_v better_a to_o have_v say_v simple_o that_o it_o be_v so_o than_o to_o have_v found_v it_o on_o so_o ill_a ground_n as_o if_o the_o affix_v papal_a bull_n in_o a_o place_n be_v a_o evidence_n that_o the_o prince_n in_o who_o dominion_n it_o be_v do_v consent_v to_o it_o he_o may_v with_o the_o same_o reason_n have_v conclude_v that_o q._n elizabeth_n consent_v to_o the_o sentence_n against_o herself_o which_o it_o be_v very_o like_a will_v not_o be_v easy_o believe_v though_o the_o bull_n be_v affix_v in_o london_n but_o all_o those_o very_a prince_n who_o he_o name_v continue_v to_o keep_v up_o their_o correspondence_n with_o the_o king_n as_o well_o after_o as_o before_o this_o sentence_n be_v a_o much_o clear_a demonstration_n that_o they_o despise_v the_o pope_n sentence_n 134._o 103._o he_o say_v the_o king_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n throw_v all_o the_o ●egging_a order_n out_o of_o their_o house_n the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o have_v appear_v already_o for_o they_o resign_v their_o house_n to_o the_o king_n and_o of_o these_o resignation_n though_o many_o be_v destroy_v yet_o near_o a_o hundred_o be_v still_o extant_a ibid._n 104._o he_o say_v the_o parliament_n in_o the_o year_n 1539_o give_v the_o king_n all_o the_o great_a monastery_n the_o parliament_n pass_v no_o such_o act_n all_o that_o they_o do_v be_v only_o to_o confirm_v the_o grant_n make_v or_o to_o be_v make_v by_o these_o house_n to_o the_o king_n it_o be_v their_o surrender_n that_o clothe_v the_o king_n with_o the_o right_n to_o they_o all_o the_o tragical_a story_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o follow_v upon_o this_o be_v found_v on_o a_o false_a foundation_n 135._o 105._o he_o set_v down_o a_o form_n of_o a_o resignation_n which_o he_o say_v all_z the_o abbot_n and_o many_o religious_a person_n be_v make_v to_o sign_n and_o set_v their_o seal_n to_o it_o among_o all_o the_o resignation_n which_o be_v yet_o extant_a there_o be_v not_o one_o in_o this_o form_n for_o which_o see_v page_n 238._o 106._o he_o say_v the_o king_n commissioner_n 136._o who_o go_v about_o get_v hand_n to_o that_o form_n make_v they_o believe_v in_o every_o house_n that_o all_o the_o rest_n have_v sign_v it_o and_o so_o by_o that_o and_o other_o persuasion_n prevail_v with_o many_o to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o it_o if_o all_o the_o subscription_n have_v be_v procure_v about_o the_o same_o time_n such_o art_n may_v be_v suspect_v but_o in_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v three_o year_n do_v these_o trick_n can_v not_o have_v serve_v their_o turn_n 107._o he_o say_v they_o tell_v the_o monk_n that_o though_o the_o king_n may_v ibid._n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n seize_v on_o their_o house_n and_o rent_n yet_o he_o desire_v rather_o to_o do_v it_o with_o their_o goodwill_n in_o this_o there_o be_v two_o error_n first_o most_o of_o these_o house_n be_v resign_v to_o the_o king_n before_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n see_v page_n 235._o and_o next_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n only_o confirm_v their_o deed_n but_o do_v not_o give_v their_o house_n to_o the_o king_n 108._o he_o say_v the_o abbot_n of_o glassenbury_n colchester_n and_o read_v 137._o suffer_v martyrdom_n because_o they_o refuse_v to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o that_o write_n there_o be_v no_o such_o write_n ever_o offer_v to_o they_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o law_n to_o force_v they_o to_o resign_v so_o they_o can_v not_o suffer_v on_o that_o account_n but_o they_o be_v martyr_n for_o sander_n faith_n for_o they_o be_v attaint_v by_o a_o legal_a trial_n of_o high_a treason_n 109._o he_o tell_v a_o long_a story_n of_o whitting_n abbot_n of_o glassenbury_n be_v bring_v up_o to_o london_n 138._o to_o be_v prevail_v with_o to_o set_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o surrender_n which_o he_o still_o refuse_v to_o do_v be_v send_v back_o and_o though_o a_o book_n against_o the_o king_n divorce_n be_v find_v among_o his_o paper_n which_o be_v lay_v there_o by_o those_o who_o search_v for_o it_o yet_o that_o be_v pass_v over_o in_o a_o chide_n but_o as_o he_o go_v home_o hear_v there_o be_v a_o meeting_n of_o the_o county_n at_o wells_n he_o go_v thither_o and_o as_o he_o be_v go_v up_o to_o his_o place_n on_o the_o bench_n he_o be_v call_v to_o the_o bar_n to_o answer_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v object_v to_o he_o he_o be_v amaze_v at_o it_o and_o ask_v what_o the_o matter_n be_v but_o one_o tell_v he_o he_o need_v fear_v nothing_o for_o somewhat_o be_v only_o to_o be_v do_v for_o form_n to_o terrify_v other_o upon_o which_o he_o be_v condemn_v and_o send_v away_o to_o his_o abbey_n little_o think_v he_o be_v so_o near_o his_o end_n but_o when_o he_o come_v near_o it_o a_o priest_n be_v send_v to_o he_o to_o take_v his_o confession_n for_o they_o tell_v he_o he_o must_v die_v immediate_o he_o beg_v a_o day_n or_o two_o respite_n but_o in_o vain_a so_o they_o hang_v he_o up_o in_o his_o habit_n on_o the_o top_n of_o the_o hill_n near_o his_o abbey_n and_o quarter_v he_o and_o all_o this_o be_v do_v in_o one_o day_n this_o book_n come_v out_o in_o foreign_a part_n and_o be_v print_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o sixtus_n the_o five_o who_o take_v great_a pleasure_n in_o such_o execution_n as_o he_o describe_v this_o to_o have_v be_v which_o may_v fall_v oft_o out_o where_o the_o life_n of_o the_o subject_n be_v whole_o at_o the_o prince_n mercy_n but_o to_o tell_v such_o tale_n of_o england_n which_o be_v so_o fame_v over_o the_o world_n for_o the_o safety_n and_o security_n the_o subject_n enjoy_v and_o for_o the_o regular_a and_o legal_a proceed_n in_o all_o trial_n especial_o of_o life_n and_o death_n be_v a_o great_a error_n in_o the_o poet_n for_o the_o decorum_n of_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o a_o place_n must_v be_v observe_v when_o any_o nation_n be_v make_v the_o scene_n of_o a_o fable_n but_o as_o nothing_o like_o this_o can_v be_v do_v by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n so_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o it_o in_o this_o case_n the_o jury_n that_o sit_v on_o he_o be_v man_n of_o great_a credit_n in_o the_o country_n when_o he_o die_v he_o acknowledge_v his_o offence_n and_o with_o appearance_n of_o repentance_n beg_v god_n pardon_n and_o the_o king_n be_v see_v page_n 239._o 145._o 110._o after_o many_o bitter_a invective_n against_o cromwell_n for_o which_o i_o can_v never_o see_v good_a evidence_n though_o i_o can_v disprove_v they_o by_o any_o convince_a argument_n he_o say_v that_o he_o advise_v the_o king_n to_o make_v a_o law_n that_o person_n may_v be_v convent_v and_o condemn_v in_o absence_n and_o without_o be_v hear_v and_o that_o this_o law_n first_o of_o all_o fell_a upon_o himself_o there_o be_v no_o such_o law_n ever_o make_v only_o the_o parliament_n by_o their_o supreme_a authority_n do_v attaint_v some_o in_o that_o manner_n but_o no_o other_o court_n may_v do_v it_o nor_o be_v this_o first_o apply_v to_o cromwell_n for_o a_o year_n before_o his_o attainder_n the_o countess_n of_o sarum_n with_o a_o great_a many_o more_o be_v so_o attaint_v though_o she_o do_v not_o suffer_v till_o a_o year_n
his_o time_n and_o have_v continue_v since_o in_o great_a honour_n as_o the_o seimour_n from_o who_o the_o duke_n of_o somerset_n be_v descend_v the_o paulet_n from_o who_o the_o marquis_n of_o winchester_n derive_v the_o russel_n wriothsly_n epirote_n riches_n and_o cromwell_n from_o who_o the_o earl_n of_o bedford_n southampton_n pembroke_n essex_n and_o ardglass_n have_v descend_v and_o the_o brown_n the_o petres_n the_o paget_n the_o north_n and_o the_o mountagues_n from_o who_o the_o vice-count_n montague_n the_o baron_n petre_n paget_n north_n and_o montague_n be_v descend_v these_o family_n have_v now_o flourish_v in_o great_a wealth_n and_o honour_n a_o age_n and_o a_o half_a and_o only_o one_o of_o they_o have_v and_o that_o but_o very_o late_o determine_v in_o the_o male_a line_n but_o the_o illustrious_a female_a branch_n of_o it_o be_v intermix_v with_o other_o noble_a family_n so_o that_o the_o observation_n be_v false_a and_o the_o inference_n be_v weak_a 164._o 119._o he_o say_v when_o the_o king_n find_v his_o strength_n decline_v he_o have_v again_o some_o thought_n of_o reconcile_a himself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o when_o it_o be_v propose_v to_o one_o of_o the_o bishop_n he_o make_v a_o flatter_a answer_n but_o gardiner_n move_v that_o a_o parliament_n may_v be_v call_v for_o do_v it_o and_o that_o the_o king_n for_o the_o quiet_a of_o his_o own_o conscience_n will_v vow_v to_o do_v it_o of_o which_o god_n will_v accept_v in_o that_o extremity_n when_o more_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v do_v but_o some_o of_o his_o courtier_n come_v about_o he_o who_o be_v very_o apprehensive_a of_o such_o a_o reconciliation_n lest_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v make_v restore_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n divert_v the_o king_n from_o it_o and_o from_o this_o our_o author_n infer_v that_o what_o the_o king_n have_v do_v be_v against_o his_o conscience_n and_o that_o so_o he_o sin_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o shall_v not_o examine_v this_o theological_a definition_n of_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o my_o quarrel_n be_v not_o at_o present_a with_o his_o divinity_n but_o with_o his_o history_n though_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v that_o he_o be_v alike_o at_o both_o but_o for_o this_o story_n it_o be_v a_o pure_a dream_n for_o not_o only_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n for_o it_o nor_o do_v gardener_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n ever_o own_o any_o such_o thing_n though_o it_o have_v be_v then_o much_o for_o the_o credit_n of_o their_o cause_n especial_o he_o be_v often_o upbraid_v with_o his_o compliance_n to_o this_o king_n for_o which_o the_o mention_n of_o his_o repentance_n have_v furnish_v he_o with_o a_o good_a answer_n but_o as_o the_o tale_n be_v tell_v the_o fiction_n appear_v too_o plain_o for_o a_o parliament_n be_v actual_o sit_v during_o the_o king_n sickness_n which_o be_v dissolve_v by_o his_o death_n and_o no_o such_o proposition_n be_v make_v in_o it_o the_o king_n on_o the_o contrary_n destroy_v the_o chief_a hope_n of_o the_o popish_a party_n which_o be_v found_v on_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n greatness_n by_o the_o attainder_n which_o be_v pass_v a_o day_n before_o he_o die_v and_o yet_o sanders_n make_v this_o discourse_n to_o have_v be_v between_o the_o king_n and_o gardiner_n after_o his_o fall_n and_o his_o son_n death_n between_o which_o and_o the_o king_n death_n there_o be_v only_o nine_o day_n but_o beside_o all_o this_o gardiner_z have_v lose_v the_o king_n favour_n a_o considerable_a time_n before_o his_o death_n 120._o he_o say_v the_o king_n 166._o that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v never_o to_o have_v do_v any_o good_a work_n in_o his_o whole_a life_n as_o he_o be_v die_v found_v christ_n church_n hospital_n in_o london_n which_o be_v all_o the_o restitution_n he_o ever_o make_v for_o the_o monastery_n and_o church_n he_o have_v rob_v and_o spoil_v if_o it_o have_v not_o already_o appear_v in_o many_o instance_n that_o our_o author_n have_v as_o little_a shame_n as_o honesty_n here_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o it_o i_o will_v not_o undertake_v to_o justify_v the_o king_n as_o if_o he_o have_v do_v what_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v in_o his_o new_a foundation_n but_o it_o be_v the_o height_n of_o impudence_n to_o deny_v thing_n that_o all_o england_n know_v he_o found_v six_o bishopric_n he_o endow_v dean_n and_o prebendary_n with_o all_o the_o other_o office_n belong_v to_o a_o cathedral_n in_o fourteen_o several_a see_v canterbury_z winchester_n duresme_fw-fr ely_n norwich_n rochester_n worcester_n and_o carlisle_z together_o with_o westminster_n chester_n oxford_n gloucester_n peterborough_n and_o bristol_n where_o he_o endow_v bishopric_n likewise_o he_o found_v many_o grammar-school_n as_o burton_n canterbury_n coventry_n worcester_z etc._n etc._n he_o found_v and_o endow_v trinity_n college_n in_o cambridg_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o noble_a foundation_n in_o christendom_n he_o also_o found_v professor_n in_o both_o university_n for_o greek_a hebrew_n law_n physic_n and_o divinity_n what_o censure_n then_o deserve_v our_o author_n for_o say_v that_o the_o hospital_n of_o christ's-church_n be_v all_o the_o restitution_n he_o ever_o make_v of_o the_o church-land_n 121._o he_o give_v a_o character_n of_o the_o king_n ibid._n which_o suit_n very_o well_o with_o his_o history_n his_o malice_n in_o it_o be_v extravagant_o ridiculous_a among_o other_o thing_n he_o say_v the_o king_n promote_v always_o learned_a bishop_n cranmer_z only_o be_v except_v who_o he_o advance_v to_o serve_v his_o lusts._n cranmer_z be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a learning_n than_o any_o that_o ever_o sit_v in_o that_o see_v before_o he_o as_o appear_v in_o every_o thing_n that_o he_o write_v tonstal_n be_v a_o learned_a man_n and_o gardiner_n be_v much_o esteem_v for_o learning_n yet_o if_o any_o will_v compare_v cranmer_n book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o those_o the_o other_o two_o write_v on_o the_o same_o subject_a there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o difference_n between_o the_o learning_n and_o solidity_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o that_o no_o man_n of_o common_a ingenuity_n can_v read_v they_o but_o he_o must_v confess_v it_o 170._o 122._o he_o say_v when_o the_o king_n find_v himself_o expire_a he_o call_v for_o a_o boul_a of_o white_a wine_n and_o say_v to_o one_o that_o be_v near_o he_o we_o have_v lose_v all_o and_o be_v often_o hear_v repeat_v monk_n monk_n and_o so_o he_o die_v this_o be_v to_o make_v the_o fable_n end_n as_o it_o have_v go_v on_o and_o it_o be_v forge_v without_o any_o authority_n or_o appearance_n of_o truth_n the_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n be_v already_o tell_v so_o it_o need_v not_o be_v repeat_v 172._o 123._o he_o say_v the_o king_n by_o his_o will_n appoint_v the_o crown_n to_o go_v to_o his_o righteous_a heir_n after_o his_o three_o child_n and_o command_v his_o son_n to_o be_v breed_v a_o true_a catholic_n but_o his_o will_n be_v change_v and_o another_o be_v forge_v by_o which_o the_o line_n of_o scotland_n be_v exclude_v and_o they_o breed_v his_o son_n a_o heretic_n there_o be_v no_o such_o will_n ever_o hear_v of_o and_o in_o all_o the_o debate_n that_o be_v manage_v in_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n about_o the_o succession_n those_o that_o plead_v for_o the_o scotish_n line_n never_o allege_v this_o which_o have_v it_o be_v true_a do_v put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o whole_a controversy_n it_o be_v indeed_o say_v that_o the_o will_n which_o be_v give_v out_o as_o the_o king_n will_n be_v not_o sign_v by_o his_o hand_n nor_o seal_v by_o his_o order_n but_o it_o be_v never_o pretend_v that_o there_o be_v any_o other_o will_v so_o this_o be_v one_o of_o our_o author_n forgery_n the_o conclusion_n thus_o i_o have_v trace_v he_o in_o this_o history_n and_o hope_v i_o have_v say_v much_o more_o than_o be_v necessary_a to_o prove_v he_o a_o writer_n of_o no_o credit_n and_o that_o his_o book_n ought_v to_o have_v no_o authority_n since_o he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o stranger_n to_o the_o public_a transaction_n print_a statute_n and_o the_o other_o authentic_a register_n of_o that_o time_n but_o be_v a_o bold_a and_o impudent_a asserter_n of_o the_o gross_a and_o most_o malicious_a lie_n that_o ever_o be_v contrive_v i_o have_v not_o examine_v all_o the_o error_n of_o his_o chronology_n for_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o thing_n tell_v in_o its_o right_a order_n and_o due_a place_n nor_o have_v i_o insist_v on_o all_o the_o passage_n he_o tell_v without_o any_o proof_n or_o appearance_n of_o truth_n for_o as_o i_o can_v only_o deny_v these_o without_o any_o other_o evidence_n but_o what_o be_v negative_a so_o there_o be_v so_o many_o of_o they_o that_o i_o must_v have_v transcribe_v the_o great_a part_n of_o
the_o cure_n and_o charge_n both_o in_o preach_v and_o other_o duty_n and_o so_o many_o hundred_o pound_n as_o any_o have_v so_o many_o student_n he_o be_v to_o breed_v up_o ten_o where_o parsonage_n or_o vicarage-house_n be_v in_o great_a decay_n the_o incumbent_a be_v every_o year_n to_o give_v a_o five_o part_n of_o his_o profit_n to_o the_o repair_n of_o they_o till_o they_o be_v finish_v and_o then_o to_o maintain_v they_o in_o the_o state_n they_o be_v in_o eleven_o all_o these_o injunction_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v under_o pain_n of_o suspension_n and_o sequestration_n of_o the_o mean_a profit_n till_o they_o be_v observe_v these_o be_v equal_o ingrateful_a to_o the_o corrupt_a clergy_n and_o to_o the_o laity_n that_o adhere_v to_o the_o old_a doctrine_n censure_v the_o very_a same_o opinion_n about_o pilgrimage_n image_n and_o saint_n depart_v and_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n for_o which_o the_o lollard_n be_v not_o long_o ago_o either_o burn_v or_o force_v to_o abjure_v they_o be_v now_o set_v up_o by_o the_o king_n authority_n from_o whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o king_n say_v of_o his_o maintain_v the_o old_a doctrine_n yet_o he_o be_v now_o change_v it_o the_o clergy_n also_o be_v much_o trouble_v at_o this_o precedent_n of_o the_o king_n give_v such_o injunction_n to_o they_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o convocation_n from_o which_o they_o conclude_v they_o be_v now_o to_o be_v slave_n to_o the_o lord_n vicegerent_n the_o matter_n of_o these_o injunction_n be_v also_o very_o uneasy_a to_o they_o the_o great_a profit_n they_o make_v by_o their_o image_n and_o relic_n and_o the_o pilgrimage_n to_o they_o be_v now_o take_v away_o and_o yet_o severe_a imposition_n and_o heavy_a tax_n be_v lay_v on_o they_o a_o five_o part_n for_o repair_v a_o ten_o at_o least_o for_o a_o exhibitioner_n and_o a_o forty_o for_o charity_n which_o be_v cry_v out_o on_o as_o intolerable_a burden_n their_o labour_n be_v also_o increase_v and_o they_o be_v bind_v up_o to_o many_o severity_n of_o life_n all_o these_o thing_n touch_v the_o secular_a clergy_n to_o the_o quick_a and_o make_v they_o concur_v with_o the_o regular_a clergy_n in_o dispose_v the_o people_n to_o rebel_n this_o be_v secret_o foment_v by_o the_o great_a abbot_n for_o though_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o strike_v at_o yet_o the_o way_n be_v prepare_v to_o it_o and_o their_o house_n be_v oppress_v with_o crowd_n of_o those_o who_o be_v send_v to_o they_o from_o the_o suppress_a house_n there_o be_v some_o pain_n take_v to_o remove_v their_o fear_n for_o a_o letter_n be_v send_v to_o they_o all_o in_o the_o king_n name_n to_o silence_v the_o report_n that_o be_v spread_v abroad_o as_o if_o all_o monastery_n be_v to_o be_v quite_o suppress_v this_o they_o be_v require_v not_o to_o believe_v but_o to_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o their_o order_n to_o obey_v the_o king_n injunction_n to_o keep_v hospitality_n and_o make_v no_o waste_n nor_o dilapidation_n yet_o this_o give_v they_o small_a comfort_n and_o as_o all_o such_o thing_n do_v rather_o increase_v than_o quiet_v their_o jealousy_n and_o fear_n so_o many_o secret_a cause_n concur_v no_o wonder_n the_o people_n fall_v into_o mutinous_a and_o seditious_a practice_n the_o first_o rise_n be_v in_o lincolnshire_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o october_n lincolnshire_n where_o a_o churchman_n disguise_v into_o a_o cobbler_n and_o direct_v by_o a_o monk_n draw_v a_o great_a body_n of_o man_n after_o he_o about_o 20000_o be_v gather_v together_o they_o swear_v to_o be_v true_a to_o god_n the_o king_n and_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o digest_v their_o grievance_n into_o a_o few_o article_n which_o they_o send_v to_o the_o king_n desire_v a_o redress_n of_o they_o they_o complain_v of_o some_o thing_n that_o relate_v to_o secular_a concern_v and_o some_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o be_v uneasy_a to_o they_o demand_n they_o also_o complain_v of_o the_o suppression_n of_o so_o many_o religious_a house_n that_o the_o king_n have_v mean_a person_n in_o high_a place_n about_o he_o who_o be_v ill_a councillor_n they_o also_o complain_v of_o some_o bishop_n who_o have_v subvert_v the_o faith_n and_o they_o apprehend_v the_o jewel_n and_o plate_n of_o their_o church_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o therefore_o they_o desire_v the_o king_n will_v call_v to_o he_o the_o nobility_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o by_o their_o advice_n redress_v their_o grievance_n conclude_v with_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o king_n be_v their_o supreme_a head_n and_o that_o the_o tenthes_o and_o first_o fruit_n of_o all_o live_n belong_v to_o he_o of_o right_n when_o the_o king_n hear_v of_o this_o insurrection_n answer_n he_o present_o send_v the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n with_o a_o commission_n to_o raise_v force_n for_o disperse_v they_o but_o with_o he_o he_o send_v a_o answer_n to_o their_o petition_n he_o begin_v with_o that_o about_o his_o councillor_n and_o say_v it_o be_v never_o before_o hear_v of_o that_o the_o rabble_n presume_v to_o dictate_v to_o their_o prince_n what_o councillor_n he_o shall_v choose_v that_o be_v the_o prince_n work_n and_o not_o they_o the_o suppression_n of_o religious_a house_n be_v do_v pursuant_n to_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o be_v not_o set_v forth_o by_o any_o of_o his_o counsellor_n the_o head_n of_o these_o religious_a house_n have_v under_o their_o own_o hand_n confess_v those_o horrid_a scandal_n which_o make_v they_o a_o reproach_n to_o the_o nation_n and_o in_o many_o house_n there_o be_v not_o above_o four_o or_o five_o religious_a person_n so_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v better_o please_v that_o such_o dissolute_a person_n shall_v consume_v their_o rent_n in_o riotous_a and_o idle_a live_n than_o that_o their_o prince_n shall_v have_v they_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n he_o also_o answer_v their_o other_o demand_n in_o the_o same_o high_a and_o command_a strain_n and_o require_v they_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o his_o mercy_n and_o to_o deliver_v their_o captain_n and_o lieutenant_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o lieutenant_n and_o to_o disperse_v and_o carry_v themselves_o as_o become_v good_a and_o obedient_a subject_n and_o to_o put_v a_o hundred_o of_o their_o number_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o lieutenant_n to_o be_v order_v as_o they_o have_v deserve_v when_o this_o answer_n be_v bring_v to_o they_o it_o raise_v their_o spirit_n high_o the_o practise_v clergyman_n continue_v to_o inflame_v they_o they_o persuade_v they_o that_o the_o christian_a religion_n will_v be_v very_o soon_o deface_v and_o take_v away_o quite_o if_o they_o do_v not_o vigorous_o defend_v it_o that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o that_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v marry_v a_o wife_n receive_v any_o of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o eat_v a_o piece_n of_o roast_a meat_n but_o he_o shall_v pay_v for_o it_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o live_v under_o the_o turk_n than_o under_o such_o oppression_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n in_o which_o they_o can_v with_o more_o honour_n and_o a_o better_a conscience_n hazard_v their_o life_n than_o for_o the_o holy_a faith_n this_o encourage_v and_o keep_v they_o together_o a_o little_a long_o they_o have_v force_v many_o of_o the_o gentry_n of_o the_o country_n to_o go_v along_o with_o they_o these_o send_v a_o secret_a message_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n let_v he_o know_v what_o ill_a effect_n the_o king_n rough_a answer_n have_v produce_v that_o they_o have_v join_v with_o the_o people_n only_o to_o moderate_v they_o a_o little_a and_o they_o know_v nothing_o that_o will_v be_v so_o effectual_a as_o the_o offer_n of_o a_o general_a pardon_n so_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n as_o he_o move_v towards_o they_o with_o the_o force_n which_o he_o have_v draw_v together_o suffolk_n send_v to_o the_o king_n to_o know_v his_o pleasure_n and_o earnest_o advise_v a_o gentle_a compose_n of_o the_o matter_n without_o blood_n at_o that_o same_o time_n the_o king_n be_v advertise_v from_o the_o north_n that_o there_o be_v a_o general_a and_o formidable_a rise_n there_o of_o which_o he_o have_v the_o great_a apprehension_n because_o of_o their_o neighbourhood_n to_o scotland_n 〈◊〉_d who_o king_n be_v the_o king_n nephew_n be_v the_o heir_n presumptive_a of_o the_o crown_n since_o the_o king_n have_v illegitimated_a both_o his_o daughter_n and_o though_o the_o king_n firm_a alliance_n with_o france_n make_v he_o less_o apprehensive_a of_o trouble_n from_o scotland_n and_o their_o king_n be_v at_o this_o time_n in_o france_n to_o marry_v the_o daughter_n of_o francis_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o know_v how_o far_o a_o general_a rise_n may_v invite_v that_o king_n to_o send_v order_n to_o head_n and_o assist_v the_o rebel_n in_o
the_o north._n therefore_o he_o resolve_v first_o to_o quiet_a lincolnshire_n and_o as_o he_o have_v raise_v a_o great_a force_n about_o london_n with_o which_o he_o be_v march_v in_o person_n against_o they_o so_o he_o send_v a_o new_a proclamation_n require_v they_o to_o return_v to_o their_o obedience_n with_o secret_a assurance_n of_o mercy_n by_o these_o mean_n they_o be_v melt_v away_o those_o who_o have_v be_v carry_v in_o the_o stream_n submit_v to_o the_o king_n mercy_n and_o promise_v all_o obedience_n for_o the_o future_a other_o that_o be_v obstinate_a and_o know_v themselves_o unpardonable_a flee_v northward_o and_o join_v themselves_o to_o the_o rebel_n there_o some_o of_o their_o other_o leader_n be_v apprehend_v in_o particular_a the_o cobbler_n and_o be_v execute_v but_o for_o the_o northern_a rebellion_n as_o the_o party_n concern_v be_v at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o the_o court_n have_v large_a opportunity_n to_o gather_v themselves_o into_o a_o huge_a body_n so_o the_o whole_a contrivance_n of_o it_o be_v better_o lay_v one_o ask_v command_v in_o chief_a he_o be_v a_o gentleman_n of_o a_o ordinary_a condition_n but_o understand_v well_o how_o to_o draw_v on_o and_o govern_v a_o multitude_n their_o march_n be_v call_v the_o pilgrimage_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o inveigle_v the_o people_n some_o priest_n march_v before_o they_o with_o cross_n in_o their_o hand_n in_o their_o banner_n they_o have_v a_o crucifix_n with_o the_o five_o wound_n and_o a_o chalice_n and_o every_o one_o wear_v on_o his_o sleeve_n as_o the_o badge_n of_o the_o party_n a_o emblem_n of_o the_o five_o wound_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o name_n jesus_n wrought_v in_o the_o midst_n all_o that_o join_v to_o they_o take_v a_o oath_n that_o they_o enter_v into_o this_o pilgrimage_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o preservation_n of_o the_o king_n person_n and_o issue_n the_o purify_n the_o nobility_n and_o drive_v away_o all_o base_a bear_v and_o ill_a counsellor_n and_o for_o no_o particular_a profit_n of_o their_o own_o nor_o to_o do_v displeasure_n to_o any_o nor_o to_o kill_v any_o for_o envy_n but_o to_o take_v before_o they_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n his_o faith_n the_o restitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o suppression_n of_o heretic_n and_o their_o opinion_n these_o be_v specious_a pretence_n formidable_a and_o very_o apt_a to_o work_v upon_o a_o giddy_a and_o discontent_a multitude_n so_o people_n flock_v about_o their_o cross_n and_o standard_n in_o great_a number_n and_o they_o grow_v to_o be_v 40000_o strong_a they_o go_v over_o the_o country_n without_o any_o great_a opposition_n the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n and_o the_o lord_n darcy_n be_v in_o pomfret_n castle_n which_o they_o yield_v to_o they_o and_o be_v make_v to_o swear_v their_o covenant_n they_o be_v both_o suspect_v of_o be_v secret_a promoter_n of_o the_o rebellion_n the_o latter_a suffer_v for_o it_o but_o how_o the_o former_a excuse_v himself_o i_o can_v give_v any_o account_n they_o also_o take_v york_n and_o hull_n but_o though_o they_o summon_v the_o castle_n of_o skipton_n yet_o the_o earl_n of_o cumberland_n who_o will_v not_o degenerate_v from_o his_o noble_a ancestor_n hold_v it_o out_o against_o all_o their_o force_n and_o though_o many_o of_o the_o gentleman_n who_o he_o have_v entertain_v at_o his_o own_o cost_n desert_v he_o yet_o he_o make_v a_o brave_a resistance_n scarborough_n castle_n be_v also_o long_o besiege_v but_o there_o sir_n ralph_n evers_n that_o command_v it_o give_v a_o un-exampled_n instance_n of_o his_o fidelity_n and_o courage_n for_o though_o his_o provision_n fall_v short_a so_o that_o for_o twenty_o day_n he_o and_o his_o man_n have_v nothing_o but_o bread_n and_o water_n yet_o they_o stand_v out_o till_o they_o be_v relieve_v this_o rise_n in_o yorkshire_n encourage_v those_o of_o lancashire_n the_o bishopric_n of_o duresm_n and_o westmoreland_n to_o arm._n against_o these_o the_o earl_n of_o shrewsbury_n that_o he_o may_v not_o fall_v short_a of_o the_o gallantry_n and_o loyalty_n of_o his_o renown_a ancestor_n make_v head_n though_o he_o have_v no_o commission_n from_o the_o king_n but_o he_o know_v his_o zeal_n and_o fidelity_n will_v easy_o procure_v he_o a_o pardon_n which_o he_o modest_o ask_v for_o the_o service_n he_o have_v do_v the_o king_n send_v he_o not_o only_o that_o but_o a_o commission_n to_o command_v in_o chief_a all_o his_o force_n in_o the_o north._n to_o his_o assistance_n he_o order_v the_o earl_n of_o derby_n to_o march_v and_o send_v courtney_n marquis_n of_o exeter_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o huntingdon_n and_o rutland_n to_o join_v he_o he_o also_o order_v the_o duke_n of_o suffolk_n with_o the_o force_n that_o he_o have_v lead_v into_o lincolnshire_n to_o lie_v still_o there_o lest_o they_o be_v but_o new_o quiet_v shall_v break_v out_o again_o and_o fall_v upon_o his_o army_n behind_o when_o the_o yorkshire_n man_n meet_v they_o before_o they_o on_o the_o 20_o of_o october_n he_o send_v the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n with_o more_o force_n to_o join_v the_o earl_n of_o shrewsbury_n but_o the_o rebel_n be_v very_o numerous_a and_o desperate_a when_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n understand_v their_o strength_n he_o see_v great_a reason_n to_o proceed_v with_o much_o caution_n for_o if_o they_o have_v get_v the_o least_o advantage_n of_o the_o king_n troop_n all_o the_o discontent_n in_o england_n will_v upon_o the_o report_n of_o that_o have_v break_v out_o he_o see_v their_o number_n be_v now_o such_o that_o the_o gain_v some_o time_n be_v their_o ruin_n for_o such_o a_o great_a body_n can_v not_o subsist_v long_o together_o without_o much_o provision_n and_o that_o must_v be_v very_o hard_a for_o they_o to_o bring_v in_o so_o he_o set_v forward_o a_o treaty_n it_o be_v both_o honourable_a for_o the_o king_n to_o offer_v mercy_n to_o his_o distract_a subject_n and_o of_o great_a advantage_n to_o his_o affair_n for_o as_o their_o number_n do_v every_o day_n lessen_v so_o the_o king_n force_n be_v still_o increase_n he_o write_v to_o the_o king_n that_o consider_v the_o season_n of_o the_o year_n he_o think_v the_o offer_v some_o fair_a condition_n may_v persuade_v they_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o arm_n and_o disperse_v themselves_o yet_o when_o the_o earl_n of_o shrewsbury_n send_v a_o herald_n with_o a_o proclamation_n order_v they_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o arm_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o king_n mercy_n ask_v receive_v he_o sit_v in_o state_n with_o the_o archbishop_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o the_o lord_n darcy_n on_o the_o other_o but_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o proclamation_n to_o be_v make_v till_o he_o know_v the_o content_n of_o it_o and_o when_o the_o herald_n tell_v what_o they_o be_v he_o send_v he_o away_o without_o suffer_v he_o to_o publish_v it_o and_o then_o the_o priest_n use_v all_o their_o endeavour_n to_o engage_v the_o people_n to_o a_o firm_a resolution_n of_o not_o disperse_v themselves_o till_o all_o matter_n about_o religion_n be_v full_o settle_v as_o they_o go_v forward_o they_o everywhere_o repossess_v the_o eject_v monk_n of_o their_o house_n and_o this_o encourage_v the_o rest_n who_o have_v a_o great_a mind_n to_o be_v in_o their_o old_a nest_n again_o they_o publish_v also_o many_o story_n among_o they_o of_o the_o grow_a burden_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d government_n and_o make_v they_o believe_v that_o imposition_n will_v be_v lay_v on_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v either_o buy_v or_o sold._n but_o the_o king_n hear_v how_o strong_a they_o be_v send_v out_o a_o general_a summons_n to_o all_o the_o nobility_n to_o meet_v he_o at_o northampton_n the_o seven_o of_o november_n and_o the_o force_n send_v against_o the_o rebel_n advance_v to_o doncaster_n doncaster_n to_o hinder_v they_o from_o come_v further_o southward_a and_o take_v the_o bridge_n which_o they_o fortify_v and_o lay_v their_o force_n along_o the_o river_n to_o maintain_v that_o pass_n the_o writer_n of_o that_o time_n say_v that_o the_o day_n of_o battle_n be_v agree_v on_o but_o that_o the_o night_n before_o excessive_a rains_n fall_v the_o river_n swell_v so_o that_o it_o be_v unpassable_a next_o day_n and_o they_o can_v not_o force_v the_o bridge_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a the_o earl_n of_o shrewsbury_n have_v in_o all_o but_o 5000_o man_n about_o he_o will_v agree_v to_o a_o pitch_a battle_n with_o those_o who_o be_v six_o time_n his_o number_n be_v then_o 30000._o therefore_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o the_o rebel_n only_o intend_v to_o pass_v the_o river_n the_o next_o day_n which_o the_o rain_n that_o fall_v hinder_v but_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolk_n continue_v to_o press_v a_o treaty_n which_o be_v hearken_v to_o by_o the_o other_o side_n who_o be_v reduce_v to_o great_a strait_n for_o their_o captain_n will_v not_o suffer_v
trust_v to_o outward_a ceremony_n and_o their_o curate_n for_o their_o own_o gain_n encourage_v they_o in_o it_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o clergyman_n be_v exempt_v from_o the_o secular_a judge_n be_v ill_o ground_v that_o bishop_n do_v ordain_v without_o due_a care_n and_o trial_n that_o the_o dignify_v clergy_n misapply_v their_o revenue_n do_v not_o follow_v their_o first_o institution_n and_o do_v not_o reside_v upon_o their_o benefice_n 3._o and_o in_o fine_a he_o move_v that_o the_o four_o sacrament_n which_o have_v be_v leave_v undetermined_a by_o the_o former_a article_n may_v be_v examine_v the_o outward_a sign_n and_o action_n the_o promise_n make_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o efficacy_n that_o be_v in_o they_o be_v well_o consider_v the_o second_o paper_n consist_v of_o two_o resolution_n make_v concern_v confirmation_n by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o stokesley_n bishop_n of_o london_n by_o which_o i_o perceive_v the_o way_n of_o examine_v matter_n by_o give_v out_o of_o question_n to_o bishop_n and_o divine_n be_v soon_o practise_v then_o when_o i_o first_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o page_n 286._o there_o be_v several_a other_o paper_n concern_v confirmation_n but_o these_o be_v only_o subscribe_v and_o the_o rest_n do_v general_o follow_v these_o two_o prelate_n who_o be_v then_o the_o head_n of_o two_o different_a party_n the_o archbishop_n go_v on_o this_o ground_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o stokesley_n and_o almost_o the_o whole_a clergy_n be_v for_o receive_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o not_o much_o inferior_a to_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o assert_n in_o his_o subscription_n the_o three_o paper_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o king_n by_o cranmer_n to_o persuade_v he_o to_o proceed_v to_o a_o further_a reformation_n 4._o that_o thing_n may_v be_v long_o and_o well_o consider_v before_o they_o be_v determine_v that_o nothing_o may_v be_v declare_v a_o part_n of_o god_n faith_n without_o good_a proof_n from_o scripture_n the_o depart_n from_o which_o rule_n have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o all_o the_o error_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o now_o man_n will_v not_o be_v lead_v as_o they_o have_v be_v but_o will_v examine_v matter_n that_o many_o thing_n be_v now_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v truth_n such_o as_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o the_o pope_n usurp_v power_n for_o which_o many_o have_v former_o suffer_v death_n whereupon_o he_o desire_v that_o some_o point_n may_v be_v examine_v by_o scrinture_n as_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n whether_o depart_v soul_n ought_v to_o be_v invocate_v whether_o tradition_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o satisfaction_n beside_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n whether_o free_a will_n may_v dispose_v itself_o to_o grace_n and_o whether_o image_n ought_v to_o be_v kiss_v or_o use_v to_o any_o other_o end_n but_o as_o representation_n of_o a_o piece_n of_o history_n in_o all_o these_o he_o desire_v the_o king_n will_v suspend_v his_o judgement_n and_o in_o particular_a that_o he_o will_v not_o determine_v against_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o will_v for_o some_o time_n silence_n both_o party_n he_o also_o propose_v that_o this_o point_n may_v by_o order_n from_o the_o king_n be_v examine_v in_o the_o university_n before_o indifferent_a judge_n that_o all_o the_o argument_n against_o it_o may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o defender_n twelve_o day_n before_o the_o public_a disputation_n and_o he_o offer_v that_o if_o those_o who_o shall_v defend_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o priest_n marriage_n be_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o indifferent_a judge_n overcome_v they_o shall_v willing_o suffer_v death_n for_o it_o but_o if_o otherwise_o all_o they_o desire_v be_v that_o in_o that_o point_n the_o king_n may_v leave_v they_o in_o the_o liberty_n to_o which_o the_o word_n of_o god_n leave_v they_o ad_fw-la page_n 249._o line_n 18._o i_o have_v see_v a_o much_o full_a paper_n concern_v order_n and_o ecclesiastical_a function_n which_o the_o reader_n will_v find_v in_o the_o collection_n sign_v by_o cromwell_n the_o two_o arch-bishop_n and_o eleven_o bishop_n 5._o and_o twenty_o divine_n and_o canonist_n declare_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o other_o church-function_n be_v formal_o distinct_a from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n that_o this_o power_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o to_o be_v limit_v by_o the_o rule_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v ordain_v only_o for_o the_o edification_n and_o good_a of_o the_o church_n that_o this_o power_n ought_v to_o be_v still_o preserve_v since_o it_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n as_o the_o mean_a of_o reconcile_a sinner_n to_o god_n order_n be_v also_o declare_v a_o sacrament_n since_o they_o consist_v of_o a_o outward_a action_n institute_v by_o christ_n and_o a_o inward_a grace_n confer_v with_o they_o but_o that_o all_o inferior_a order_n janitor_n lector_n etc._n etc._n be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n to_o beautify_v and_o adorn_v it_o and_o be_v take_v from_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v but_o of_o deacon_n or_o minister_n and_o priest_n or_o bishop_n nor_o be_v there_o belong_v to_o order_n any_o other_o ceremony_n mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n this_o be_v sign_v either_o in_o the_o year_n 1537_o or_o 1538_o since_o it_o be_v subscribe_v both_o by_o john_n hilsey_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n and_o edward_z fox_n bishop_n of_o hereford_n for_o the_o one_o be_v consecrate_v in_o 1537_o and_o the_o other_o die_v in_o may_n 1538._o on_o this_o paper_n i_o will_v add_v two_o remark_n the_o one_o be_v that_o after_o this_o i_o do_v never_o find_v the_o inferior_a degree_n under_o a_o deacon_n mention_v in_o this_o church_n so_o it_o seem_v at_o this_o time_n they_o be_v lay_v aside_o they_o be_v first_o set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o or_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o three_o century_n in_o the_o middle_n of_o which_o we_o find_v both_o cornelius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o st._n cyprian_a mention_v they_o as_o order_n that_o be_v then_o establish_v and_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v design_v as_o previous_a step_n to_o the_o sacred_a function_n that_o none_o may_v be_v ordain_v to_o these_o but_o such_o as_o have_v be_v long_o before_o separate_v from_o a_o secular_a state_n of_o life_n and_o have_v give_v good_a proof_n of_o themselves_o in_o these_o low_a degree_n but_o it_o turn_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v only_o a_o matter_n of_o form_n and_o many_o take_v the_o first_o tonsure_v that_o they_o may_v be_v exempt_v from_o the_o secular_a power_n and_o be_v qualify_v for_o commendam_n and_o some_o other_o worldly_a advantage_n to_o which_o these_o low_a order_n be_v sufficient_a by_o those_o rule_n which_o the_o canonist_n have_v bring_v in_o another_o thing_n be_v that_o both_o in_o this_o write_n and_o in_o the_o necessary_a erudition_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v speak_v of_o as_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n they_o know_v none_o of_o those_o subtlety_n which_o be_v find_v out_o in_o the_o latter_a age_n it_o be_v then_o think_v enough_o that_o a_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v dedicate_v to_o his_o function_n by_o a_o new_a imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o that_o several_a office_n can_v not_o be_v perform_v without_o bishop_n such_o as_o ordination_n confirmation_n etc._n etc._n but_o they_o do_v not_o refine_v in_o these_o matter_n so_o much_o as_o to_o inquire_v whether_o bishop_n and_o priest_n differ_v in_o order_n and_o office_n or_o only_o in_o degree_n but_o after_o the_o schoolman_n fall_v to_o examine_v matter_n of_o divinity_n with_o logical_a and_o unintelligible_a nicety_n and_o the_o canonist_n begin_v to_o comment_n upon_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n they_o study_v to_o make_v bishop_n and_o priest_n seem_v very_o near_a one_o another_o so_o that_o the_o difference_n be_v but_o small_a they_o do_v it_o with_o different_a design_n the_o schoolman_n have_v set_v up_o the_o grand_a mystery_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v to_o exalt_v the_o priestly_a office_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a for_o the_o turn_v the_o host_n into_o god_n be_v so_o great_a a_o action_n that_o they_o reckon_v there_o can_v be_v no_o office_n high_o than_o that_o which_o qualify_v a_o man_n to_o so_o mighty_a a_o performance_n therefore_o as_o they_o change_v the_o form_n of_o ordination_n from_o what_o it_o be_v ancient_o believe_v to_o consist_v in_o to_o a_o deliver_v of_o the_o sacred_a vessel_n and_o hold_v that_o a_o priest_n have_v his_o order_n by_o that_o rite_n and_o not_o by_o